Selected quad for the lemma: faith_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
faith_n church_n scripture_n tradition_n 15,184 5 9.5685 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A29205 Schisme garded and beaten back upon the right owners shewing that our great controversy about Papall power is not a quaestion of faith but of interest and profit, not with the Church of Rome, but with the Court of Rome : wherein the true controversy doth consist, who were the first innovators, when and where these Papall innovations first began in England : with the opposition that was made against them / by John Bramhall. Bramhall, John, 1594-1663. 1658 (1658) Wing B4232; ESTC R24144 211,258 494

There are 43 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

thing_n which_o offer_v itself_o to_o our_o consideration_n be_v his_o minor_a proposition_n rule_n whether_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v break_v these_o bond_n of_o unity_n &c_n &c_n but_o i_o hold_v it_o more_o methodical_a to_o examine_v first_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o major_n that_o these_o be_v the_o right_a bond_n of_o unity_n and_o so_o dispatch_v that_o part_n out_o of_o my_o hand_n all_o which_o be_v agree_v upon_o unanimousl_o between_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o dependent_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o deliur_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n in_o they_o all_o by_o the_o oral_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n of_o a_o world_n of_o father_n to_o a_o world_n of_o child_n successive_o as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n or_o difcipline_n receive_v from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n which_o so_o vast_a a_o multitude_n of_o eye_n witness_n do_v see_v visible_o practise_v from_o age_n to_o age_n be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o such_o a_o rule_n be_v infallible_a and_o impossibe_v to_o be_v crooked_a but_o these_o two_o rule_n be_v such_o rule_n and_o so_o he_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v incapable_a of_o usurpation_n and_o as_o easy_a to_o teach_v faith_n as_o child_n learn_v their_o a_o b_o c._n i_o have_v give_v his_o argument_n as_o much_o force_n and_o edge_n as_o i_o can_v possible_o but_o all_o this_o wind_n shake_v no_o corn._n his_o other_o two_o rule_n be_v not_o so_o much_o to_o be_v blame_v as_o this_o rule_n of_o rule_n oral_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n 6._o of_o such_o oral_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n it_o be_v that_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o sribe_n and_o pharisee_n that_o they_o make_v the_o commandment_n of_o god_n of_o none_o effect_v by_o their_o tradition_n 18._o and_o st._n peter_n tell_v the_o disperse_a jew_n that_o they_o be_v redeem_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n from_o their_o vain_a conversation_n receive_v by_o tradition_n from_o their_o father_n these_o be_v such_o tradition_n as_o the_o jew_n pretend_v they_o have_v receive_v from_o moses_n and_o the_o prophet_n as_o the_o romanist_n pretend_v now_o to_o have_v receive_v their_o tradition_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n otherwise_o we_o do_v not_o only_o admit_v oral_a tradition_n in_o general_a as_o a_o excellent_a introduction_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o save_a truth_n and_o a_o singular_a help_n to_o expound_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o also_o particular_a unwritten_a tradition_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o manifest_a testimony_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o apostle_n do_v speak_v by_o inspiration_n as_o well_o as_o write_v and_o their_o tradition_n whether_o by_o word_n or_o write_v indifferent_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n into_o which_o faith_n be_v resolve_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o this_o present_a or_o another_o age_n have_v this_o privilege_n to_o be_v free_a from_o all_o error_n that_o be_v absolute_o destructive_a to_o salvation_n but_o this_o they_o have_v not_o from_o the_o nature_n of_o tradition_n which_o be_v subject_a to_o error_n to_o corruption_n to_o change_v to_o contradiction_n mobilitate_fw-la viget_fw-la viresque_fw-la acquirit_fw-la eundo_fw-la but_o from_o the_o special_a providence_n and_o protection_n of_o christ_n who_o have_v promise_v to_o be_v with_o his_o church_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n in_o sum_n i_o deny_v both_o his_o proposition_n first_o his_o major_n immediate_a tradition_n from_o parent_n to_o child_n be_v not_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a rule_n of_o truth_n and_o faith_n tradition_n be_v often_o doubtful_a do_v often_o change_v with_o the_o time_n and_o sometime_o contradict_v one_o another_o as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o different_a tradition_n of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n about_o the_o observation_n of_o easter_n and_o the_o counsel_n of_o nice_a and_o frankford_n about_o image_n etc._n etc._n neither_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o papal_a right_n be_v so_o visible_a as_o he_o imagine_v credulity_n and_o ignorance_n and_o prejudice_n and_o passion_n and_o interest_n do_v all_o act_v their_o part_n upon_o his_o ground_n there_o can_v be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a usurpation_n yet_o experience_n teach_v we_o that_o there_o have_v be_v such_o usurpation_n in_o all_o age_n if_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o renounce_v the_o immediate_a tradition_n of_o his_o father_n and_o grandfather_n and_o great_a grandfather_n then_o other_o may_v have_v the_o like_a and_o better_a reason_n let_v he_o believe_v the_o sun_n dance_v upon_o easter_n morn_n and_o the_o swanssinging_a and_o the_o pelican_n dig_v of_o her_o breast_n with_o her_o bill_n and_o all_o the_o story_n of_o king_n arthur_n and_o robin_n hood_n for_o it_o may_v be_v he_o have_v receive_v all_o these_o from_o his_o elder_n by_o immediate_a tradition_n he_o himself_o confess_v that_o the_o possession_n of_o goverument_n must_v be_v such_o a_o possession_n as_o may_v be_v presumable_a to_o have_v come_v from_o christ_n not_o of_o such_o a_o one_o as_o every_o one_o know_v when_o it_o begin_v p._n 49._o to_o what_o purpose_n be_v it_o to_o pretend_v tradition_n for_o all_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o see_v all_o of_o they_o have_v their_o first_o original_a eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n second_o this_o be_v not_o all_o he_o ascribe_v moreover_o too_o much_o to_o the_o immediate_a tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n but_o much_o more_o than_o too_o much_o to_o the_o immediate_a tradition_n of_o his_o elder_n to_o make_v it_o absolute_o infallible_a cui_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la subesse_fw-la falsum_fw-la and_o to_o resolve_v faith_n into_o it_o the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v into_o that_o which_o be_v formal_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o voice_n of_o the_o present_a church_n may_v be_v material_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o thing_n testify_v but_o it_o can_v be_v formal_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o witness_n and_o manner_n of_o testify_v but_o immediate_a tradition_n be_v often_o a_o seminary_n of_o error_n three_o he_o make_v the_o oral_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n of_o father_n to_o their_o child●ren_n to_o be_v a_o more_o ready_a and_o safe_a rule_n of_o faith_n then_o the_o holy_a scripture_n which_o be_v the_o canon_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o ready_a that_o it_o be_v as_o easy_a as_o for_o boy_n to_o learn_v their_o a_o b_o c._n and_o so_o safe_a that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o be_v make_v crooked_a last_o he_o confound_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o the_o one_o be_v but_o particular_a 24_o the_o other_o universal_a tradition_n saint_n augustine_n set_v we_o down_o a_o certain_a rule_n how_o to_o know_v a_o true_a genuine_a apostolical_a tradition_n quod_fw-la univers_a a_o tenet_n ecclesia_fw-la nec_fw-la conciliis_fw-la institutum_fw-la sed_fw-la semper_fw-la retentum_fw-la est_fw-la nonnifi_n authoriate_v apostolica_fw-la traditum_fw-la verissin_n i_o creditur_fw-la whatfoever_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v hold_v which_o be_v not_o institute_v by_o counsel_n but_o always_o receive_v be_v most_o right_o believe_v to_o have_v be_v deliver_v by_o apostolical_a authority_n these_o three_o mark_n conjoinct_o do_v most_o firm_o prove_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o there_o have_v be_v apostolical_a tradition_n which_o have_v want_v some_o of_o these_o mark_v but_o they_o be_v neither_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n nor_o can_v be_v prove_v at_o this_o day_n after_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n to_o have_v be_v apostolical_a tradition_n whatsoever_o want_v either_o universality_n or_o perpetuity_n be_v not_o absolute_o vecessary_a neither_o can_v the_o reception_n of_o one_o apostolical_a church_n prove_v a_o tradition_n to_o be_v apostolical_a if_o other_o apostolical_a church_n do_v reject_v it_o and_o contradict_v it_o to_o conclude_v we_o give_v all_o due_a respect_n to_o tradition_n but_o not_o so_o much_o to_o oral_a tradition_n as_o to_o write_a tradition_n as_o beingmore_o certain_a less_o subject_a to_o mistake_n and_o more_o easy_o free_v from_o mistake_n litter_n a_o scriptamanet_fw-la a_o serious_a person_n if_o he_o be_v but_o to_o deliver_v a_o long_a message_n of_o importance_n from_o one_o to_o another_o will_v be_v careful_a either_o to_o receive_v it_o in_o writing_n or_o put_v it_o in_o writing_n nor_o so_o much_o to_o particular_a immediate_a tradition_n as_o we_o do_v to_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n he_o overshoot_v himself_o beyond_o all_o aim_n in_o affirm_v of_o immediate_a and_o particular_a tradition_n that_o where_o it_o have_v place_v it_o be_v impossible_a for_o usurpation_n or_o abuse_n to_o enter_v or_o find_v admittance_n he_o may_v as_o
obey_v their_o priest_n then_o their_o king_n but_o they_o must_v move_v their_o rudder_n according_a to_o the_o various_a face_n of_o the_o sky_n and_o await_v for_o a_o fit_a opportunity_n as_o our_o king_n do_v which_o fall_v o●t_v at_o the_o reformation_n when_o they_o follow_v his_o counsel_n in_o good_a earnest_n and_o with_o the_o civil_a sword_n do_v lop_v away_o all_o papal_a usurpation_n and_o abuse_n other_o division_n than_o this_o to_o divide_v between_o the_o rotte●_n and_o the_o sound_n we_o make_v none_o the_o great_a division_n which_o follow_v our_o reformation_n be_v make_v by_o themselves_o and_o their_o censure_n our_o article_n do_v testify_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v make_v no_o division_n from_o any_o church_n but_o only_o from_o error_n and_o abuse_n seven_o he_o plead_v that_o in_o case_n these_o temporal_a inconvenience_n have_v not_o be_v otherwise_o remediable_a ye●_n ecclesiastical_a communion_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v break_v for_o temporal_a concernment_n to_o prove_v this_o conclusion_n he_o bring_v six_o reason_n some_o pertinent_a some_o impertinent_a and_o very_a improper_a but_o he_o may_v have_v save_v his_o labour_n for_o if_o he_o understand_v his_o conclusion_n in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o he_o ought_v to_o understand_v it_o and_o wherein_o i_o hope_v he_o do_v understand_v it_o of_o desert_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o of_o any_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n qua_fw-la ●ale_n as_o it_o be_v a_o member_n for_o mere_a temporal_a respect_n concedo_fw-la omne_fw-la i_o grant_v the_o conclusion_n but_o if_o by_o break_v ecclesiastical_a communion_n he_o understand_v desert_v the_o communion_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n as_o it_o be_v erroneous_a and_o wherein_o it_o be_v erroneous_a his_o conclusion_n be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o his_o purpose_n nor_o his_o six_o proof_n pertinent_a to_o his_o conclusion_n but_o he_o may_v remember_v first_o that_o our_o ground_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n do_v not_o all_o relate_v to_o temporal_a inconvenience_n but_o some_o of_o they_o to_o eternity_n and_o conscience_n and_o that_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v conjoint_o second_o that_o we_o do_v not_o make_v these_o temporal_a inconvenience_n to_o be_v irremediable_a we_o ourselves_o have_v find_v out_o a_o remedy_n and_o it_o be_v the_o same_o which_o he_o himself_o advise_v in_o this_o place_n to_o thrust_v out_o all_o entroachment_n and_o usurpation_n with_o the_o civil_a sword_n if_o they_o will_v grow_v angry_a upon_o this_o and_o break_v ecclesiastical_a communion_n themselves_o it_o be_v their_o act_n not_o we_o who_o have_v act_v nothing_o who_o have_v declare_v nothing_o against_o any_o right_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n divine_a or_o humane_a but_o only_o against_o his_o encroachment_n and_o usurpation_n and_o particular_o against_o his_o coactive_a powe●_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n within_o the_o english_a dominion_n they_o may_v take_v we_o to_o be_v not_o only_o very_o tame_a creature_n but_o very_o stupid_a creature_n first_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o entrench_v and_o encroach_v and_o usurp_v upon_o we_o daily_o and_o they_o to_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v we_o to_o isachars_n condition_n to_o undergo_v our_o burden_n with_o patience_n like_o ass_n because_o we_o may_v not_o break_v ecclesiastical_a communion_n for_o temporal_a concernment_n we_o have_v do_v nothing_o but_o what_o we_o have_v good_a warrant_n for_o from_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n let_v they_o suffer_v for_o it_o who_o either_o separate_a from_o other_o without_o just_a cause_n or_o give_v other_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v from_o they_o in_o the_o next_o place_n follow_v a_o large_a panegyricall_a oration_n i●_n the_o praise_n of_o unity_n of_o the_o benefit_n and_o necessity_n of_o it_o mix_v with_o a_o invective_n against_o we_o for_o break_v both_o the_o bond_n of_o unity_n the_o former_a of_o those_o consideration_n be_v altogether_o superfluous_a to_o praise_v unity_n which_o no_o man_n do_v ever_o dispraise_v but_o to_o his_o own_o perpetual_a disgrace_n the_o latter_a be_v a_o mere_a tautology_n or_o repetition_n of_o what_o he_o have_v say_v before_o which_o i_o will_v not_o trouble_v the_o reader_n withal_o but_o only_o where_o i_o find_v some_o new_a weight_n add_v 572_o he_o say_v we_o acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n right_o metaphysical_o a_o true_a church_n which_o have_v the_o true_a essence_n and_o be_v of_o a_o church_n but_o not_o moral_o true_a or_o free_a from_o error_n he_o demand_v what_o be_v the_o certain_a method_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o he_o please_v to_o take_v so_o much_o pain_n to_o view_n my_o answer_n to_o militier_n he_o may_v find_v both_o who_o we_o hold_v to_o be_v fit_a expositor_n of_o scripture_n and_o what_o be_v the_o right_a manner_n of_o expound_v scripture_n if_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v against_o it_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o fair_a hear_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o our_o best_a champion_n chillingworth_n and_o falkland_n do_v very_o candid_o confess_v that_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o probability_n only_o he_o cit_v no_o place_n and_o i_o do_v not_o hold_v it_o worthy_a of_o a_o search_n whether_o they_o do_v confess_v it_o or_o not_o it_o be_v honour_n enough_o for_o they_o to_o have_v be_v genuine_a son_n of_o the_o english_a church_n i_o hope_v they_o be_v so_o and_o man_n of_o rare_a part_n whereof_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v yet_o one_o of_o they_o be_v a_o lay_n man_n it_o may_v be_v neither_o of_o they_o so_o deep_o radicate_v in_o the_o right_a faith_n of_o the_o english_a church_n as_o many_o other_o but_o our_o chief_a champion_n be_v those_o who_o stick_v close_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n interpret_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o for_o that_o assertion_n which_o you_o father_n upon_o they_o that_o we_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o faith_n but_o probability_n only_o we_o detest_v it_o and_o when_o you_o or_o any_o other_o be_v please_v to_o make_v trial_n you_o will_v find_v that_o we_o have_v as_o great_a assurance_n altogether_o for_o our_o faith_n as_o yourselves_o have_v for_o your_o old_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o much_o more_o than_o you_o have_v for_o your_o new_a article_n he_o accuse_v we_o for_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o greek_n lutheran_n huguenot_n 373._o perhaps_o socinian_n presbyterian_o adamite_n quaker_n etc._n etc._n and_o after_o he_o add_v roman_a catholic_n be_v not_o huguenot_n presbyterian_o in_o his_o sense_n if_o they_o be_v why_o do_v he_o disjoin_v they_o i_o know_v no_o reason_n why_o we_o shall_v not_o admit_v greek_o and_o lutherans_n to_o our_o communion_n and_o if_o he_o have_v add_v they_o armenian_n abyssine_n muscovite_n and_o all_o those_o who_o do_v profess_v the_o apostolical_a creed_n as_o it_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o first_o four_o general_n counsel_n under_o the_o primitive_a discipline_n and_o the_o roman_a catholic_n also_o if_o they_o do_v not_o make_v their_o error_n to_o be_v a_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n as_o for_o adamite_n and_o quaker_n we_o know_v not_o what_o they_o be_v and_o for_o socinian_o we_o hold_v they_o worse_o than_o arrian_n the_o arrian_n make_v christ_n to_o be_v a_o secondary_a god_n erat_fw-la quando_fw-la non_fw-la erat_fw-la but_o the_o socinian_o make_v he_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a creature_n and_o for_o presbyterian_o what_o my_o judgement_n be_v he_o may_v find_v full_o set_v down_o in_o my_o reply_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n epistle_n but_o say_v he_o every_o one_o of_o these_o have_v a_o different_a head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o english_a head_n be_v the_o king_n the_o roman_a catholic_n head_n be_v the_o pope_n the_o grecian_a head_n be_v the_o patriarch_n the_o presbyterian_a head_n be_v the_o presbytery_n or_o synod_n and_o the_o lutheran_n head_n be_v the_o parish_n minister_n first_o for_o the_o lutheran_n he_o do_v they_o egregious_a wrong_n throughout_o the_o kingdom_n of_o denwark_n and_o sweden_n they_o have_v theit_n bishop_n name_n and_o thing_n and_o throughout_o germany_n they_o have_v their_o superintendent_o and_o to_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v he_o that_o there_o be_v several_a head_n of_o the_o church_n christ_n alone_o be_v the_o spiritual_a head_n the_o sovereign_a prince_n the_o political_a head_n the_o ecclesiastical_a head_n be_v a_o general_n council_n and_o under_o that_o each_o patriarch_n in_o his_o patriarchate_n and_o among_o the_o patriarch_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o a_o priority_n of_o order_n we_o who_o maintain_v the_o king_n to_o be_v the_o political_a head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n do_v not_o deny_v the_o spiritual_a headship_n of_o christ_n nor_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o
hold_v out_o encroachment_n with_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sword_n without_o any_o meddle_v with_o just_a right_n other_o division_n than_o this_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v allow_v we_o believe_v our_o ancestor_n intend_v none_o we_o hold_v none_o and_o so_o be_v accountable_a for_o none_o the_o main_a question_n be_v whether_o the_o britannic_a church_n be_v de_fw-la facto_fw-la subject_n to_o rome_n or_o not_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v the_o contrary_a already_o that_o they_o be_v not_o and_o have_v always_o their_o ordination_n at_o home_n but_o his_o conclusion_n which_o he_o put_v upon_o i_o that_o true_a complaint_n against_o governor_n whether_o otherwise_o remediable_a or_o no_o be_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o abolish_v that_o very_a government_n be_v a_o vain_a assertion_n of_o his_o own_o no_o conclusion_n of_o i_o he_o start_v a_o question_n here_o little_a to_o his_o own_o credit_n whether_o he_o that_o maintain_v the_o negative_a or_o he_o that_o maintain_v the_o affirmative_a aught_o to_o prove_v he_o say_v according_a to_o his_o old_a pueriles_fw-la that_o a_o negative_a may_v be_v prove_v in_o logic_n no_o man_n doubt_v of_o it_o or_o deny_v it_o quis_fw-la e●im_fw-la potest_fw-la negare_fw-la i_o say_v on_o the_o contrary_a that_o in_o this_o case_n which_o come_v here_o in_o difference_n between_o we_o according_a to_o the_o strict_a rule_n of_o law_n the_o burden_n to_o prove_v rest_v only_o on_o his_o side_n who_o affirm_v as_o the_o question_n be_v here_o between_o we_o whether_o we_o have_v other_o remedy_n then_o to_o make_v such_o a_o reformation_n as_o we_o do_v we_o say_v no._n they_o say_v yea._n it_o be_v possible_a to_o ●rove_v there_o may_v be_v other_o remedy_n ●ut_v it_o be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v there_o be_v no_o ●ther_a remedy_n galen_n or_o hypocrates_n himself_o will_v not_o have_v undertake_v such_o a_o task_n to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n for_o a_o disease_n then_o that_o which_o they_o use_v it_o be_v not_o for_o want_v of_o logical_a form_n that_o negative_n be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v ●n_o matter_n of_o fact_n but_o for_o want_v of_o sufficient_a medium_n he_o say_v he_o be_v no_o bowler_n and_o so_o ●nexpert_a as_o not_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v the_o soal_v of_o a_o bowl_n it_o may_v be_v it_o be_v true_a but_o if_o i_o shall_v put_v he_o to_o prove_v this_o negative_a it_o be_v impossible_a but_o so_o far_o as_o a_o negative_a of_o that_o nature_n be_v capable_a of_o proof_n i_o do_v prove_v it_o by_o our_o address_n to_o pope_n and_o counsel_n and_o long_a expectation_n in_o vain_a that_o we_o have_v no_o other_o remedy_n then_o that_o which_o we_o use_v to_o thrust_v out_o their_o usurpation_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n which_o course_n he_o himself_o advise_v and_o we_o practise_v the_o division_n be_v not_o make_v by_o they_o who_o thrust_v out_o usurpation_n but_o by_o they_o who_o bring_v they_o in_o and_o defend_v they_o i_o say_v that_o not_o only_o our_o ancestor_n but_o all_o catholic_n country_n do_v maintain_v their_o own_o privilege_n inviolated_a and_o make_v themselves_o the_o last_o judge_n of_o their_o grievance_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n hence_o he_o conclude_v with_o open_a mouth_n therefore_o there_o be_v other_o remedy_n there_o need_v no_o division_n alas_o poor_a man_n how_o he_o trouble_v himself_o about_o nothing_o they_o and_o we_o use_v the_o very_a same_o remedy_n the_o same_o that_o he_o advise_v in_o this_o place_n the_o pope_n will_v not_o ease_v they_o upon_o many_o address_n make_v what_o then_o have_v not_o the_o king_n the_o sword_n in_o his_o own_o hand_n 571._o do_v it_o not_o lie_v in_o his_o power_n to_o right_v himself_o as_o he_o list_v and_o to_o admit_v those_o pretend_a encroachment_n only_o so_o far_o as_o he_o think_v just_a and_o fit_v yes_o the_o king_n have_v the_o sword_n in_o his_o hand_n and_o do_v right_v himself_o and_o cast_v out_o those_o papal_a usurpatious_a so_o far_o as_o he_o find_v just_o and_o now_o when_o we_o have_v follow_v your_o own_o advice_n you_o call_v we_o schismatic_n and_o divider_n sr._n we_o be_v no_o divider_n but_o we_o have_v do_v our_o duty_n and_o if_o we_o prove_v those_o thing_n which_o we_o cast_v out_o to_o be_v usurpation_n as_o we_o have_v do_v you_o be_v the_o schismatic_n by_o your_o own_o confession_n he_o plead_v if_o papal_a authority_n be_v of_o christ_n institution_n than_o no_o just_a cause_n can_v possible_o be_v give_v for_o its_o abolishment_n right_o but_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o be_v neither_o of_o christ_n institution_n nor_o of_o man_n institution_n but_o mere_a usurpation_n neither_o do_v we_o seek_v to_o abolish_v papal_a authority_n but_o to_o reform_v it_o from_o accidental_a abuse_n and_o reduce_v it_o to_o its_o first_o institution_n the_o best_a institution_n divine_a or_o humane_a may_v sometime_o need_v such_o reformation_n here_o be_v nothing_o like_o proof_n but_o his_o world_n of_o witness_n and_o his_o immemoriall_n tradition_n presume_v not_o prove_v to_o show_v that_o no_o nation_n suffer_v so_o much_o as_o england_n under_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n he_o say_v i_o produce_v nothing_o but_o the_o pleasant_a say_n of_o a_o certain_a pope_n well_o will_v he_o have_v a_o better_a witness_n against_o the_o pope_n than_o the_o pope_n himself_o habemus_fw-la confitentem_fw-la reum_fw-la he_o be_v pleasant_a indeed_o but_o ridentem_fw-la dicere_fw-la verum_fw-la quid_fw-la vetat_fw-la what_o hinder_v that_o a_o man_n may_v net_n tell_v the_o truth_n laugh_v he_o ask_v whether_o those_o testimony_n which_o i_o produce_v be_v demonstrative_a or_o rigorous_a evidence_n i_o think_v he_o will_v have_v i_o like_o the_o unskilful_a painter_n to_o write_v over_o the_o head_n of_o my_o argument_n this_o be_v a_o demonstration_n it_o will_v become_v he_o better_a to_o refute_v they_o and_o show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o demonstrative_a then_o to_o trifle_v away_o the_o time_n with_o such_o frivolous_a question_n i_o show_v that_o england_n be_v not_o alone_o in_o the_o separation_n so_o long_o as_o all_o the_o eastern_a southern_a northern_a and_o so_o great_a a_o part_n of_o the_o western_a church_n have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o be_v separate_v by_o they_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o we_o in_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o bid_v i_o show_v that_o those_o i_o call_v christian_n have_v any_o infallible_a or_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v first_o to_o hang_v man_n up_o and_o then_o to_o examine_v their_o cause_n first_o to_o excommunicate_v four_o part_n of_o five_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o their_o own_o interest_n because_o they_o will_v not_o submit_v their_o neck_n to_o the_o roman_a yoke_n and_o embrace_v their_o upstart_n usurpation_n with_o as_o much_o devotion_n as_o the_o genuine_a legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n it_o behove_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v weigh_v the_o case_n more_o mature_o before_o they_o give_v such_o a_o temerarious_a sentence_n against_o the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o christendom_n in_o so_o weighty_a a_o cause_n but_o for_o their_o rule_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v a_o more_o certain_a and_o authentic_a rule_n than_o he_o himself_o by_o as_o much_o as_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v a_o more_o authentic_a rule_n of_o faith_n than_o pius_n the_o fourth_n creed_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n a_o more_o infallible_a ground_n then_o particular_a supposititious_a tradition_n which_o want_v both_o perpetuity_n and_o universality_n i_o say_v that_o we_o desire_v to_o live_v in_o the_o peaceable_a communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n as_o well_o as_o our_o ancestor_n as_o far_o as_o the_o roman_a court_n will_v give_v we_o leave_v he_o answer_v that_o he_o know_v very_o well_o we_o will_v be_v glad_a that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v own_v we_o for_o she_o &c_n &c_n that_o lack_v straw_n or_o wat_n tiler_n after_o they_o have_v rebel_v have_v no_o mind_n to_o be_v hang_v that_o it_o be_v no_o charity_n or_o courtesy_n in_o we_o but_o a_o request_n of_o a_o unreasonable_a favour_n from_o they_o to_o admit_v we_o into_o their_o communion_n and_o will_v be_v most_o absurd_a in_o government_n etc._n etc._n whether_o they_o hold_v we_o for_o they_o or_o not_o be_v not_o much_o material_a if_o they_o do_v it_o be_v the_o better_a for_o themselves_o if_o they_o do_v not_o it_o be_v not_o the_o worse_a for_o we_o so_o as_o christ_n own_v we_o for_o he_o it_o skill_v not_o much_o whether_o they_o say_v come_v you_o bless_v or_o go_v you_o curse_v whether_o we_o be_v the_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o although_o he_o snuff_v at_o
become_v indifferent_a unconcern_v opinion_n because_o they_o be_v negative_a i_o wish_v no_o more_o disparagement_n to_o any_o man_n then_o to_o be_v the_o author_n of_o such_o a_o absurd_a assertion_n either_o they_o be_v fundamental_a article_n or_o unconcern_v opinion_n how_o shall_v they_o cease_v to_o be_v article_n which_o never_o be_v article_n that_o there_o be_v one_o god_n and_o one_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n that_o the_o life_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v everlasting_a and_o the_o fire_n of_o the_o devil_n everlasting_a be_v article_n of_o faith_n but_o every_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v deduce_v from_o these_o be_v not_o a_o distinct_a article_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o my_o plea_n that_o we_o take_v nothing_o away_o but_o weed_n he_o plead_v first_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o self_n supposition_n or_o a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n by_o his_o leave_n i_o have_v demonstrate_v that_o all_o the_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o be_v all_o gross_a usurpation_n and_o weed_n which_o do_v never_o sprout_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n until_o after_o 1100_o year_n no_o man_n can_v say_v without_o shame_n that_o such_o be_v plant_v by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n second_o he_o except_v that_o to_o take_v away_o error_n be_v a_o requisite_a act_n of_o justice_n not_o a_o proof_n of_o moderation_n on_o the_o contrary_a therefore_o it_o be_v a_o proof_n of_o moderation_n because_o it_o be_v a_o requisite_a act_n of_o justice_n all_o virtue_n consist_v in_o the_o mean_a or_o in_o a_o moderation_n it_o be_v not_o his_o particular_a pretend_a supposititious_a tradition_n which_o do_v secure_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v and_o that_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v the_o genuine_a word_n of_o god_n but_o the_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ._n my_o last_o proof_n of_o our_o moderation_n be_v that_o we_o be_v ready_a in_o the_o preparation_n of_o our_o mind_n to_o believe_v and_o practice_n whatsoever_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o this_o present_a age_n do_v believe_v and_o practise_v and_o this_o be_v a_o infallible_a preservative_n to_o keep_v a_o man_n within_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n whosoever_o do_v this_o cordial_o can_v possible_o be_v a_o formal_a heretic_n or_o schismatic_a because_o he_o be_v invincible_o ignorant_a of_o his_o heresy_n or_o schism_n 48._o no_o man_n can_v have_v just_a cause_n to_o separate_v his_o communion_n a_o communione_n orbis_fw-la terrarum_fw-la from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n if_o he_o will_v have_v confute_v this_o his_o way_n have_v be_v to_o have_v propose_v something_o which_o the_o christian_a world_n unite_a do_v believe_v or_o practice_v which_o we_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o believe_v or_o practise_v this_o he_o do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o attempt_v to_o do_v but_o bark_v and_o rail_v without_o rhyme_n or_o reason_n first_o he_o tell_v we_o we_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o universal_a church_n choose_v reader_n whether_o thou_o will_v believe_v he_o or_o our_o leiturgy_n wherein_o we_o pray_v daily_o that_o god_n will_v inspire_v the_o universal_a church_n with_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n unity_n and_o concord_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o do_v not_o doubt_v but_o we_o have_v renounce_v our_o creed_n choose_v reader_n whether_o thou_o will_v believe_v he_o or_o our_o leiturgy_n wherein_o we_o make_v profession_n daily_o of_o the_o apostolic_a nicene_n and_o athanasian_n creed_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o have_v renounce_v our_o reason_n if_o he_o have_v say_v only_o that_o we_o have_v lose_v our_o reason_n it_o be_v more_o than_o any_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n will_v say_v but_o to_o say_v we_o have_v renounce_v our_o reason_n be_v incredible_a the_o reason_n of_o all_o this_o be_v because_o we_o give_v no_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v a_o true_a church_n from_o a_o heretical_a he_o suppose_v that_o no_o heretical_a church_n be_v a_o true_a church_n the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n may_v instruct_v he_o better_o that_o a_o heretical_a church_n be_v a_o true_a church_n while_o it_o err_v invincible_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v live_v in_o circumstance_n to_o be_v as_o well_o acquaint_v with_o our_o doctrine_n as_o most_o man_n be_v yet_o he_o profess_v that_o if_o his_o life_n be_v at_o stake_n be_v can_v not_o determine_v absolute_o upon_o our_o constant_a ground_n whether_o presbyterian_o anabaptist_n or_o quaker_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o universal_a church_n or_o no._n the_o near_a relation_n that_o he_o have_v have_v to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o more_o shame_n for_o he_o to_o scoff_n so_o often_o at_o the_o suppose_a nakedness_n of_o his_o mother_n and_o to_o revile_v she_o so_o virulent_o without_o either_o ground_n or_o provocation_n which_o give_v he_o his_o christian_a be_v he_o have_v my_o charitable_a judgement_n of_o presbyterian_o in_o my_o reply_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n epistle_n and_o for_o the_o other_o sect_n it_o be_v much_o better_a to_o have_v a_o little_a patience_n and_o suffer_v they_o to_o die_v of_o themselves_o then_o trouble_v the_o world_n so_o much_o about_o they_o they_o be_v produce_v in_o a_o storm_n and_o will_v die_v in_o a_o calm_a he_o may_v be_v sure_a they_o will_v never_o molest_v he_o at_o any_o council_n either_o general_n or_o occidental_a it_o be_v honour_n enough_o for_o they_o to_o be_v name_v in_o earnest_n by_o a_o polemic_a writer_n but_o what_o manner_n of_o dispute_v be_v this_o to_o bring_v question_n in_o stead_n of_o argument_n as_o what_o new_a form_n of_o discipline_n the_o protestant_n have_v introduce_v what_o be_v the_o certain_a condition_n of_o a_o right_n ecumenical_a council_n what_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n and_o of_o what_o particular_a church_n it_o do_v consist_v what_o be_v the_o note_n to_o know_v a_o true_a church_n from_o a_o heretical_a we_o have_v introduce_v no_o new_a discipline_n but_o retain_v the_o old_a our_o condition_n of_o a_o right_n ecumenical_a council_n be_v the_o same_o they_o be_v not_o altogether_o so_o rigorous_o exact_v in_o case_n of_o invincible_a necessity_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o ourselves_o then_o to_o censure_v other_o either_o to_o intrude_v ourselves_o into_o the_o office_n of_o god_n to_o distinguish_v perfect_o formal_a schismatic_n from_o material_a or_o into_o the_o office_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o determine_v precise_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o her_o communion_n who_o not_o we_o exclude_v all_o those_o who_o undoubted_a general_n counsel_n have_v exclude_v the_o rest_n we_o leave_v to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o free_a council_n as_o general_n as_o may_v be_v but_o because_o i_o will_v not_o leave_v he_o unsatisfied_a in_o any_o thing_n i_o be_o content_v to_o admit_v their_o own_o definition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v the_o company_n of_o christian_n knit_v together_o by_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o same_o sacrament_n under_o the_o government_n of_o lawful_a pastor_n take_v away_o that_o purple_a patch_n which_o they_o have_v add_v at_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o it_o for_o their_o own_o interest_n and_o especial_o of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n as_o the_o only_a vicar_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n and_o if_o they_o have_v stint_v at_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n i_o shall_v not_o have_v except_v against_o it_o he_o object_v that_o protestant_n have_v no_o ground_n to_o distinguish_v true_a believer_n from_o false_a that_o be_v strange_a indeed_o while_o we_o have_v the_o same_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o same_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n according_a to_o the_o same_o analogy_n of_o faith_n wherein_o we_o give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o father_n not_o to_o be_v author_n but_o witness_n of_o tradition_n whatsoever_o ground_n they_o have_v to_o distinguish_v true_a believer_n from_o false_a we_o have_v the_o same_o but_o because_o i_o make_v the_o apostle_n creed_n to_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n he_o object_v first_o than_o the_o puritan_n who_o deny_v the_o article_n of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n must_v be_v exclude_v quite_o from_o the_o universal_a church_n if_o they_o be_v so_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n if_o they_o be_v turn_v out_o yet_o let_v they_o be_v hear_v first_o they_o plead_v that_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n descent_n be_v not_o particular_o determine_v but_o let_v it_o be_v determine_v or_o not_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n by_o a_o general_n council_n and_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o general_n
or_o humane_a law_n and_o refuse_v to_o contend_v with_o we_o when_o we_o prove_v they_o to_o be_v usurpation_n to_o what_o end_n do_v he_o interest_n himself_o and_o break_v other_o man_n head_n with_o the_o clatter_a noise_n of_o his_o sabot_n sect_n x._o a_o answer_n to_o their_o objection_n their_o first_o objection_n be_v that_o we_o have_v separate_v ourselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n i_o answer_v that_o we_o hold_v communion_n with_o thrice_o so_o many_o catholic_n christian_n as_o they_o do_v that_o be_v the_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a christian_n beside_o protestant_n he_o interprete_v these_o christian_n with_o who_o we_o hold_v communion_n to_o be_v numberless_a multitude_n of_o manichee_n gnostic_n carpocratian_o arrian_n nestorian_n eutichian_o &c._n &c._n add_v that_o he_o protest_v most_o faithful_o he_o do_v not_o think_v that_o i_o have_v any_o solid_a reason_n to_o refuse_v communion_n to_o the_o worst_a of_o they_o reader_n learn_v how_o to_o value_v his_o faithful_a protestation_n hereafter_o i_o show_v that_o we_o all_o detest_v those_o damn_a heresy_n and_o complain_v of_o his_o partiality_n and_o want_n of_o ingenuity_n to_o abuse_v the_o reader_n with_o such_o lie_a suggestion_n which_o he_o himself_o know_v to_o be_v most_o false_a and_o challenge_v he_o to_o show_v that_o any_o of_o we_o be_v guilty_a of_o any_o of_o these_o heresy_n now_o see_v what_o he_o produce_v to_o free_v himself_o from_o such_o a_o horrid_a calumny_n first_o he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n tax_n be_v evident_o this_o to_o show_v some_o solid_a reason_n why_o he_o admit_v some_o of_o these_o and_o reject_v other_o this_o be_v not_o the_o purge_n of_o his_o old_a calumny_n but_o the_o twist_v of_o a_o new_a calumny_n to_o it_o labhominate_a and_o anathematise_v they_o all_o and_o he_o will_v have_v a_o reason_n of_o i_o why_o i_o admit_v some_o of_o they_o and_o reject_v other_o well_o do_v brave_a disputant_n second_o he_o urge_v suppose_v he_o can_v not_o charge_v the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o any_o of_o these_o ot●er_a church_n with_o any_o of_o these_o heresy_n be_v there_o no_o other_o here●sies_n in_o the_o world_n but_o these_o old_a one_o or_o be_v it_o impossible_a that_o a_o new_a heresy_n shall_v arise_v there_o be_v other_o heresy_n in_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o a_o new_a heresy_n my_o arise_v but_o what_o do_v that_o concern_v the_o church_n of_o england_n unless_o he_o think_v that_o there_o be_v no_o heresy_n in_o the_o world_n nor_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n must_v be_v guilty_a if_o it_o worse_o and_o worse_o he_o proceed_v that_o he_o accuse_v not_o the_o church_n of_o england_n or_o the_o bishop_n for_o hold_v those_o material_a point_n but_o that_o have_v no_o determinate_a certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v no_o ground_n to_o reject_v any_o from_o their_o communion_n who_o hold_v some_o common_a point_n of_o christianity_n with_o they_o it_o be_v well_o habemus_fw-la c●nfi●entem_fw-la reum_fw-la mr._n serjeant_n retract_v his_o charge_n the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o bishop_n be_v once_o declare_v innocent_a of_o those_o old_a heresy_n which_o he_o make_v a_o muster_n of_o to_o no_o purpose_n to_o let_v he_o see_v that_o i_o say_v nothing_o new_a and_o how_o he_o thrash_v his_o own_o friend_n blind_a fold_n peter_n lombard_n thomas_n a_o jesu_n cardinal_n tolet_n and_o many_o other_o do_v make_v the_o question_n about_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o be_v verbal_a only_o without_o reality_n and_o that_o the_o grecian_a expression_n of_o spiritus_fw-la filii_fw-la the_o spirit_n of_o the_o son_n and_o per_fw-la filium_fw-la by_o the_o son_n do_v signify_v as_o much_o as_o our_o filioque_fw-la and_o from_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o nestorian_n onuphrius_n give_v this_o judgement_n tertii_fw-la these_o nestorian_n do_v seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v retain_v the_o name_n of_o nestorius_n the_o heretic_n rather_o than_o his_o error_n for_o i_o find_v nothing_o in_o they_o that_o savour_v of_o that_o sect._n and_o for_o the_o suppose_a eutychian_o thomas_n a_o jesu_n give_v we_o ample_a testimony_n that_o the_o suspicion_n do_v grow_v upon_o a_o double_a mistake_n 11._o they_o be_v suspect_v of_o eutychianisme_n because_o they_o retain_v not_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n because_o they_o suspect_v it_o of_o nestorianisme_n but_o yet_o they_o accurse_v eutyches_n for_o a_o heretic_n and_o so_o do_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n anathematise_v nestorius_n the_o same_o be_v assert_v by_o brerewood_n 183._o out_o of_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o jacobite_n nestorian_n armenian_n cophites_n and_o abyssine_n to_o his_o objection_n i_o answer_v first_o that_o though_o we_o have_v no_o such_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o present_o necessary_a that_o we_o must_v tumble_v headlong_o into_o such_o abominable_a error_n as_o many_o of_o these_o heretic_n hold_v which_o the_o discreet_a heathen_a do_v detest_v second_o we_o have_v a_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n the_o apostle_n creed_n dilate_v in_o the_o scripture_n or_o the_o scripture_n contract_v into_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o for_o that_o ugly_a fardel_n of_o heresy_n which_o he_o mention_v we_o can_v show_v that_o they_o be_v all_o diametral_o opposite_a to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o it_o be_v explain_v in_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n reader_n have_v a_o care_n to_o presere_fw-fr epicte●us_n he_o jewel_n remember_v to_o distrust_v such_o faithful_a or_o rather_o feign_a protestation_n he_o argue_v all_o those_o heretic_n have_v the_o same_o rule_n or_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o protestant_n have_v namely_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o they_o be_v all_o of_o the_o protestant_a communion_n in_o good_a time_n all_o those_o heretic_n have_v the_o same_o rule_n or_o ground_n of_o their_o faith_n that_o roman_a catholic_n have_v namely_o the_o holy_a scripture_n therefore_o they_o be_v of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n communion_n if_o he_o except_v that_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o ground_n or_o rule_n of_o faith_n to_o roman_a catholic_n but_o the_o scripture_n interpret_v according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n of_o england_n say_v the_o very_a same_o for_o itself_o so_o if_o this_o be_v the_o source_n of_o all_o error_n to_o abandon_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n we_o be_v far_o enough_o from_o the_o source_n of_o all_o error_n this_o be_v the_o only_a difference_n in_o this_o particular_a between_o i_o and_o mr._n serjeant_n what_o he_o attribute_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o immediate_a forefather_n i_o ascribe_v to_o the_o perpetual_a and_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n who_o will_v believe_v that_o this_o man_n himself_o have_v desert_v the_o tradition_n of_o his_o immediate_a forefather_n that_o which_o he_o add_v the_o tradition_n of_o immediate_a forefather_n be_v the_o only_a ground_n of_o faith_n certainty_n and_o the_o deny_v of_o it_o more_o pestilential_a than_o the_o deny_v of_o the_o godhead_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o assert_v the_o worst_a of_o those_o error_n which_o any_o of_o those_o old_a heretic_n hold_v as_o there_o be_v two_o god_n a_o good_a god_n and_o a_o evil_a god_n be_v most_o false_a and_o dangerous_a to_o tumble_v into_o a_o certain_a crime_n for_o fear_n of_o a_o uncertein_a what_o he_o add_v concern_v sect_n new_a spring_v up_o in_o england_n and_o luther_n and_o carolostadius_fw-la concern_v not_o we_o nor_o the_o present_a controversy_n i_o say_v that_o some_o few_o eastern_a christian_n be_v call_v nestorian_n and_o some_o other_o by_o reason_n of_o some_o unusual_a expression_n suspect_v of_o e●tichianisme_n but_o most_o wrongful_o and_o in_o our_o name_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o those_o church_n which_o hold_v communion_n with_o we_o i_o accuse_v all_o the_o error_n of_o those_o heretic_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o he_o say_v that_o nothing_o be_v more_o right_a then_o to_o call_v they_o so_o that_o what_o i_o say_v here_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o public_a and_o best_a intelligence_n we_o have_v from_o those_o remote_a country_n that_o i_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o cling_v in_o very_o brotherly_a and_o very_a love_o with_o the_o nestorian_n and_o eutychian_o though_o i_o say_v i_o will_v not_o that_o i_o stroke_v those_o error_n which_o i_o accurse_v with_o a_o gentle_a hand_n still_v they_o but_o unusual_a expression_n first_o for_o so_o much_o as_o concern_v myself_o i_o have_v renounce_v those_o error_n i_o have_v accurse_v they_o if_o yet_o he_o will_v not_o credit_v i_o there_o be_v nothing_o leave_v for_o i_o to_o do_v but_o to_o appeal_v to_o god_n
schism_n garded_n and_o beat_v back_o upon_o the_o right_a owner_n show_v that_o our_o great_a controversy_n about_o papal_a power_n be_v not_o a_o quaestion_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o interest_n and_o profit_n not_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n wherein_o the_o true_a controversy_n do_v consist_v who_o be_v the_o first_o innovator_n when_o and_o where_o these_o papal_a innovation_n first_o begin_v in_o england_n with_o the_o opposition_n that_o be_v make_v against_o they_o by_o john_n bramhall_n d._n d._n bishop_n of_o derry_n act._n 25._o 10._o i_o stand_v at_o caesar_n judgement_n seat_n where_o i_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_v psalm_n 19_o 2._o dies_fw-la diei_fw-la eructat_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o nox_fw-la nocti_fw-la indicat_fw-la scientiam_fw-la gravenhagh_n imprint_v by_o john_n ramzey_n anno_fw-la m.dc.lviii_o to_o the_o christian_a reader_n especial_o the_o roman-catholic_n of_o england_n christian_n reader_n the_o great_a bustle_n in_o the_o controversy_n concern_v papal_a power_n or_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v either_o about_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o some_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n as_o thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o to_o thou_o will_v i_o give_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o feed_v my_o sheep_n or_o about_o some_o privilege_n confer_v upon_o the_o roman_a see_v by_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n and_o the_o edict_n of_o emperor_n but_o pretend_v by_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o the_o maintainer_n thereof_o to_o be_v hold_v by_o divine_a right_n i_o endeavour_v in_o this_o treatise_n to_o disabuse_v thou_o and_o to_o show_v that_o this_o challenge_n of_o divine_a right_n be_v but_o a_o blind_a or_o diversion_n to_o withhold_v thou_o from_o find_v out_o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o quaestion_a so_o the_o hare_n make_v her_o double_n and_o her_o jump_v before_o she_o come_v to_o her_o form_n to_o hinder_v tracer_n from_o find_v she_o out_o i_o demonstrate_v to_o thou_o that_o the_o true_a controversy_n be_v not_o concern_v st._n peter_n we_o have_v no_o form_a difference_n about_o st_n peter_n nor_o about_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o of_o interest_n and_o profit_n nor_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o wherein_o it_o do_v consist_v namely_o in_o these_o quaestion_n who_o shall_v confer_v english_a bishopricke_n who_o shall_v convocate_v english_a synod_n who_o shall_v receive_v ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o fidelity_n whether_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v bind_v law_n in_o england_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o king_n and_o kingdom_n or_o dispense_v with_o english_a law_n at_o his_o own_o pleasure_n or_o call_v english_a subject_n to_o rome_n without_o the_o prince_n leave_n or_o set_v up_o legantine_n court_n in_o england_n against_o their_o will_n and_o this_o i_o show_v not_o out_o of_o the_o opinion_n of_o particular_a author_n but_o out_o of_o the_o public_a law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n i_o prove_v moreover_o out_o of_o our_o fundamental_a law_n and_o the_o write_n of_o our_o best_a historiographer_n that_o all_o these_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n be_v abuse_n and_o innovation_n and_o usurpation_n first_o attempt_v to_o be_v introduce_v into_o england_n above_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o innovator_n and_o the_o praecise_a time_n when_o each_o innovation_n begin_v and_o the_o opposition_n that_o be_v make_v against_o it_o by_o our_o king_n by_o our_o bishop_n by_o our_o peer_n by_o our_o parliament_n with_o the_o groan_n of_o the_o kingdom_n under_o these_o papal_a innovation_n and_o extortion_n likewise_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n thou_o have_v be_v instruct_v that_o the_o catholic_n faith_n do_v comprehend_v all_o those_o point_n which_o be_v controvert_v between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n without_o the_o express_a belief_n whereof_o no_o christian_n can_v be_v save_v whereas_o in_o truth_n all_o these_o be_v but_o opinion_n yet_o some_o more_o dangerous_a than_o other_o if_o none_o of_o they_o have_v ever_o be_v start_v in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n for_o point_n to_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n into_o this_o apostolical_a faith_n profess_v in_o the_o creed_n and_o explicate_v by_o the_o four_o first_o general_n counsel_n and_o only_o into_o this_o faith_n we_o have_v all_o be_v baptize_v far_o be_v it_o from_o we_o to_o imagine_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v evermore_o baptize_v and_o do_v still_o baptise_v but_o into_o one_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a faith_n in_o sum_n do_v thou_o desire_v to_o live_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n so_o do_v i._o but_o as_o i_o dare_v not_o change_v the_o cognisance_n of_o my_o christianity_n that_o be_v my_o creed_n nor_o enlarge_v the_o christian_a faith_n i_o mean_v the_o essentials_n of_o it_o beyond_o those_o bound_n which_o the_o apostle_n have_v set_v so_o i_o dare_v not_o to_o serve_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n limit_v the_o catholic_n church_n which_o christ_n have_v purchase_v with_o his_o blood_n to_o a_o four_o or_o a_o five_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n thou_o be_v for_o tradition_n so_o be_o i_o but_o my_o tradition_n be_v not_o the_o tradition_n of_o one_o particular_a church_n contradict_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o another_o church_n but_o the_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n unite_v such_o a_o tradition_n be_v a_o full_a proof_n which_o be_v receive_v semper_fw-la ubique_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la always_o every_o where_o and_o by_o all_o christian_n neither_o do_v i_o look_v upon_o the_o opposition_n of_o a_o handful_n of_o heretic_n they_o be_v no_o more_o be_v compare_v to_o the_o innumerable_a multitude_n of_o christian_n in_o one_o or_o two_o age_n as_o inconsistent_a with_o universality_n any_o more_o than_o the_o high_a mountain_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o roundness_n of_o the_o earth_n thou_o desire_v to_o bear_v the_o same_o respect_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o thy_o ancestor_n do_v so_o do_v i._o but_o for_o that_o fullness_n of_o power_n yea_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n over_o the_o subject_n of_o other_o prince_n and_o against_o their_o will_n devise_v by_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n not_o by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v that_o pernicious_a source_n from_o whence_o all_o these_o usurpation_n do_v spring_v our_o ancestor_n from_o time_n to_o time_n make_v law_n against_o it_o and_o our_o reformation_n in_o point_n of_o discipline_n be_v right_o understand_v be_v but_o a_o pursue_n of_o their_o step_n the_o true_a controversy_n be_v whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n ought_v by_o divine_a right_a to_o have_v the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o english_a church_n and_o coactive_a jurisdiction_n in_o english_a court_n over_o english_a subject_n against_o the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n schism_n garded_n and_o beat_v back_o upon_o the_o right_a owner_n or_o a_o clear_a and_o civil_a answer_n to_o the_o rail_a accusation_n of_o s._n w._n in_o his_o late_a book_n call_v schism_n dispat'ched_a whatsoever_o s._n w._n alias_o mr._n serjeant_n do_v intimate_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o he_o dare_v not_o cough_v out_o it_o be_v a_o most_o undeniable_a truth_n that_o no_o particular_a church_n no_o not_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o be_v exempt_v from_o a_o possibility_n of_o fall_v into_o error_n in_o faith_n when_o these_o error_n be_v in_o essential_o of_o faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n necessitate_v medii_fw-la they_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v guilty_a of_o they_o but_o if_o these_o error_n be_v in_o inferior_a point_n such_o as_o be_v neither_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v know_v nor_o to_o be_v believe_v before_o they_o be_v know_v such_o a_o erroneous_a church_n err_v without_o obstinacy_n and_o hold_v the_o truth_n implicit_o in_o praeparatione_n animi_fw-la may_v and_o do_v still_o continue_v a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o other_o coordinate_a church_n may_v and_o aught_o to_o maintain_v communion_n with_o it_o not_o withstand_v that_o they_o dissent_v in_o opinion_n but_o if_o one_o church_n before_o a_o lawful_a determination_n shall_v obtrude_v she_o own_o error_n or_o opinion_n upon_o all_o other_o church_n as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o her_o communion_n or_o after_o determination_n shall_v obtrude_v doubtful_a opinion_n whether_o they_o be_v erroneous_a or_o not_o as_o necessary_a article_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o so_o not_o only_o explain_v but_o likewise_o enlarge_v the_o ancient_a creed_n she_o become_v schismatical_a as_o on_o the_o
affirm_v that_o neither_o the_o king_n of_o england_n nor_o the_o church_n of_o england_n neither_o convocation_n nor_o parliament_n do_v break_v his_o two_o necessary_a bond_n of_o christian_a unity_n or_o either_o of_o they_o or_o any_o part_n of_o either_o of_o they_o but_o that_o the_o very_a breaker_n and_o violator_n of_o these_o rule_n be_v the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n they_o do_v break_v his_o rule_n of_o faith_n by_o add_v new_a point_n to_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o save_a truth_n which_o be_v not_o the_o legaceye_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n nor_o deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n do_v break_v his_o second_o rule_n of_o unity_n in_o discipline_n by_o obtrude_a their_o excessive_a and_o intolerable_a usurpation_n upon_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o particular_o upon_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o necessary_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n it_o appear_v plain_o by_o compare_v that_o which_o have_v be_v say_v with_o his_o position_n of_o the_o case_n that_o after_o all_o his_o brag_v of_o undeniable_a evidence_n and_o unquestionable_a certainty_n he_o have_v quite_o miss_v the_o question_n we_o join_v with_o he_o in_o his_o rule_n of_o faith_n we_o oppose_v not_o st._n peter_n primacy_n of_o order_n and_o he_o himself_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o st._n peter_n have_v a_o large_a or_o more_o extend_a power_n then_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n and_o though_o we_o can_v force_v our_o understanding_n to_o assent_v that_o after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n peter_n linus_n or_o cletus_n or_o clemens_n or_o anacle●us_o be_v superior_n to_o s._n john_n and_o have_v actual_a jurisdiction_n over_o he_o who_o have_v as_o large_a a_o commission_n immediate_o from_o christ_n as_o s._n peter_n himself_o and_o large_a than_o any_o succeed_a roman_a bishop_n ever_o have_v yet_o to_o show_v he_o how_o little_a we_o be_v concern_v in_o it_o and_o for_o his_o clear_a conviction_n we_o be_v willing_a to_o suppose_v that_o they_o be_v his_o superior_n and_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o make_v all_o the_o advantage_n of_o his_o second_o rule_n which_o he_o can_v in_o this_o cause_n and_o here_o if_o i_o regard_v not_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o myself_o and_o the_o reader_n more_o than_o his_o opposition_n i_o may_v withdraw_v my_o hand_n from_o the_o table_n but_o i_o be_o so_o great_a a_o friend_n of_o ingenuity_n that_o i_o will_v for_o once_o discharge_v his_o office_n and_o show_v the_o world_n demonstrative_o and_o distinct_o what_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n by_o henry_n the_o eight_o upon_o which_o consideration_n the_o weight_n of_o the_o whole_a controversy_n do_v lie_v for_o it_o be_v agree_v between_o we_o that_o if_o it_o appear_v by_o rigorous_a evidence_n that_o all_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o be_v renounce_v and_o cast_v out_o of_o england_n by_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v gross_a vsurpatton_n than_o his_o renounce_n be_v no_o eriminall_a breach_n but_o a_o lawful_a self_n enfranchisement_n and_o by_o undeniable_a consequence_n the_o gild_n of_o schism_n rest_v upon_o they_o who_o make_v the_o usurpation_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n i_o add_v further_o upon_o the_o equity_n of_o my_o second_o ground_n that_o although_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v cast_v out_o something_o more_o than_o be_v aught_o yet_o if_o we_o hold_v not_o out_o more_o than_o we_o ought_v and_o be_v ready_a to_o admit_v all_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v admit_v by_o we_o than_o we_o be_v innocent_a and_o free_a from_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n and_o it_o rest_v sole_o upon_o they_o who_o either_o will_v have_v more_o than_o their_o due_a or_o nothing_o wheresoever_o the_o fault_n be_v there_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n be_v if_o the_o fault_n be_v single_a the_o gild_n be_v single_a 6._o if_o the_o fault_n be_v mutual_a the_o gild_n be_v mutual_a and_o for_o rigorous_a evidence_n there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o evidence_n more_o demonstrative_a what_o papal_a power_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n than_o the_o very_a act_n of_o parliament_n themselves_o by_o which_o it_o be_v cast_v out_o let_v we_o view_v they_o all_o the_o first_o act_n make_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o which_o have_v any_o referente_fw-la to_o rome_n be_v the_o act_n for_o hold_v plurality_n of_o benefice_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n by_o dispensation_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n make_v licenses_fw-la for_o non_fw-la residence_n from_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v void_a and_o the_o party_n who_o procure_v such_o licenses_fw-la for_o pluralitye_n or_o nonresidence_n to_o forfeit_n twenty_o pound_n and_o to_o lose_v the_o profit_n of_o that_o benefice_n which_o he_o hold_v by_o such_o dispensation_n it_o be_v a_o pretty_a thing_n indeed_o if_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n shall_v make_v necessary_a law_n and_o the_o pope_n may_v give_v they_o liberty_n to_o break_v they_o at_o his_o pleasure_n 9_o the_o second_o act_n be_v that_o no_o person_n shall_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o t●e_v diocese_n where_o he_o dwell_v except_o in_o certain_a case_n which_o though_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o reflect_v upon_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o it_o be_v concern_v in_o it_o but_o the_o arch_n audience_n and_o other_o archiepiscopall_a court_n within_o the_o realm_n the_o three_o act_n be_v mere_o declarative_a of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n as_o well_o the_o common_a law_n as_o the_o statute_n law_n and_o ground_v whole_o upon_o they_o as_o by_o the_o view_n of_o the_o statute_n itself_o do_v appear_v so_o it_o cast_v out_o no_o foreign_a power_n but_o what_o the_o law_n have_v cast_v out_o before_o 12._o the_o sum_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o all_o cause_n matrimonial_a testamentary_a or_o about_o tithe_n etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v hear_v and_o final_o judge_v in_o england_n by_o the_o proper_a judge_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a respective_o and_o not_o elsewhere_o notwithstanding_o any_o foreign_a inhibition_n appeal_v sentence_n citation_n suppension_n or_o excommunication_n and_o that_o if_o any_o english_a subject_n procure_v a_o process_n inhibition_n appeal_v etc._n etc._n from_o or_o to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o execute_v they_o to_o the_o hindrance_n of_o any_o process_n here_o he_o shall_v incur_v the_o penalty_n ordain_v by_o the_o statute_n of_o provision_n or_o praemunire_n make_v in_o the_o sixteen_o year_n of_o king_n richard_n the_o second_o against_o such_o as_o make_v provision_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 19_o this_o law_n be_v enlarge_v afterward_o to_o all_o cause_n of_o ecclesiastical_a cognisance_n and_o all_o appeal_n to_o rome_n forbid_v the_o four_o act_n be_v a_o act_n for_o punish_v of_o heresy_n wherein_o there_o be_v three_o clause_n that_o concern_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o first_o be_v this_o 14._o and_o that_o there_o be_v many_o heresy_n and_o pain_n and_o punishment_n for_o heresy_n declare_v and_o ordain_v in_o and_o by_o the_o canonical_a sanction_n and_o by_o the_o law_n and_o ordination_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o their_o authority_n for_o hold_v do_v preach_v of_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o say_v canonical_a sanction_n law_n and_o ordinance_n which_o be_v but_o humane_a be_v mere_a repugnant_a and_o contrarious_a to_o the_o royal_a prerogative_n regal_a jurisdiction_n law_n statute_n and_o ordinance_n of_o this_o realm_n the_o second_o clause_n be_v that_o no_o licence_n be_v obtain_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o preach_v in_o any_o part_n of_o this_o realm_n or_o to_o do_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n and_o statute_n of_o this_o realm_n or_o the_o king_n prerogative_n royal_a the_o three_o clause_n follow_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o confirm_v by_o holy_a scripture_n be_v never_o common_o attest_v to_o be_v any_o law_n of_o god_n or_o man_n within_o this_o realm_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v deem_v heresy_n to_o speak_v or_o do_v contrary_a to_o the_o pretend_a power_n or_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n make_v or_o give_v by_o humane_a law_n and_o not_o by_o scripture_n nor_o to_o speak_v or_o act_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o this_o realm_n the_o five_o act_n be_v a_o act_n concern_v the_o submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n to_o the_o king_n majesty_n 19_o the_o scope_n of_o it_o be_v this_o that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v not_o assemble_v in_o convocation_n nor_o make_v or_o proniulge_v any_o new_a canon_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n hitherto_o there_o be_v nothing_o new_a in_o point_n of_o law_n then_o that_o the_o king_n shall_v have_v
whole_a circuit_n of_o cathage_n with_o a_o bull_n hide_v by_o her_o art_n so_o he_o within_o his_o first_o movership_n can_v comprehend_v the_o patronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n and_o the_o right_a to_o convocate_v and_o dissolve_v and_o confirm_v english_a synod_n and_o to_o invalidate_v old_a oath_n and_o to_o impose_v new_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o to_o receive_v ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o all_o legislative_a judiciary_n and_o dispensative_a power_n coactive_o in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n over_o english_a subject_n he_o can_v plead_v any_o charter_n from_o england_n we_o never_o make_v any_o such_o grant_v and_o although_o we_o have_v yet_o consider_v how_o infinite_o prejudicial_a it_o be_v to_o the_o public_a tranquillity_n of_o the_o kingdom_n we_o may_v and_o ought_v more_o advise_o to_o retract_v what_o we_o unadvised_o once_o resolve_v and_o for_o prescription_n he_o be_v so_o far_o to_o seek_v that_o there_o be_v a●_n clear_a prescription_n of_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n against_o he_o so_o there_o be_v nothing_o remain_v for_o he_o to_o stick_v to_o but_o his_o empty_a pretence_n of_o divine_a right_n which_o be_v more_o ridiculous_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n to_o claim_v a_o divine_a right_n of_o such_o a_o sovereign_a power_n which_o do_v branch_n itself_o into_o so_o many_o particular_n after_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n which_o for_o so_o many_o age_n have_v never_o be_v acknowledge_v never_o practise_v in_o the_o english_a church_n either_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n we_o can_v believe_v that_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n be_v mole-eyed_n or_o do_v sit_v in_o darkness_n for_o so_o many_o century_n of_o year_n until_o pope_n hildebrand_n and_o pope_n paschalis_n do_v start_v up_o like_o two_o new_a light_n with_o their_o weapon_n in_o their_o hand_n to_o thump_v prince_n and_o knock_v they_o into_o a_o right_a catholic_n belief_n and_o indeed_o this_o answer_n to_o his_o pretend_a demonstration_n by_o a_o real_a demonstration_n where_o the_o true_a controversy_n do_v lie_v and_o who_o be_v the_o true_a innovator_n do_v virtual_o answer_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v say_v so_o i_o may_v just_o stop_v here_o and_o suspend_v my_o former_a pain_n but_o that_o i_o have_v a_o great_a mind_n to_o try_v if_o i_o can_v find_v out_o one_o of_o those_o many_o falsification_n and_o contradiction_n which_o he_o will_v make_v n_n believe_v he_o have_v espy_v in_o my_o discourse_n if_o it_o be_v not_o the_o deception_n of_o his_o sight_n first_o probable_a he_o tell_v we_o that_o our_o best_a champion_n do_v grant_v that_o our_o faith_n and_o its_o ground_n be_v but_o probable_a sure_o he_o do_v write_v this_o between_o sleep_v and_o wake_v when_o he_o can_v not_o well_o distinguish_v between_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o indifferent_a opinion_n concern_v point_n of_o faith_n or_o to_o use_v cajetans_n expression_n between_o determinare_fw-la de_fw-la fideformaliter_fw-la and_o determinare_fw-la de_fw-la eo_fw-la quod_fw-la est_fw-la fidei_fw-la materialiter_fw-la between_o point_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o such_o question_n as_o do_v sometime_o happen_v in_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v as_o for_o essentials_n of_o faith_n the_o pillar_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v not_o found_v more_o firm_o than_o our_o belief_n upon_o that_o undoubted_a rule_n of_o vincentius_n quicquid_fw-la ubique_fw-la semper_fw-la &_o ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o we_o believe_v as_o a_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o have_v for_o it_o the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n and_o therein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o but_o they_o have_v no_o such_o perpetual_a or_o universal_a tradition_n for_o their_o twelve_o new_a article_n of_o pope_n pius_n this_o objection_n will_v have_v become_v i_o much_o better_a than_o he_o whatsoever_o we_o believe_v they_o believe_v and_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n of_o all_o place_n and_o all_o age_n do_v now_o believe_v and_o ever_o do_v believe_v except_o condemn_a heretic_n but_o they_o endeavour_v to_o obtrude_v new_a essentials_n of_o faith_n upon_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o have_v no_o such_o perpetual_a no_o such_o universal_a tradition_n he_o that_o accuse_v another_o shall_v have_v a_o eye_n to_o himself_o do_v not_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n stand_v now_o otherwise_o in_o order_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n than_o it_o do_v in_o henry_n the_o seven_n day_n he_o add_v further_a that_o it_o be_v confess_v that_o the_o papal_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n be_v cast_n out_o of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eight_o day_n i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o mutation_n concern_v faith_n nor_o concern_v any_o legacy_n which_o christ_n leave_v to_o his_o church_n nor_o concern_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o any_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a but_o concern_v coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n concern_v the_o political_a or_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n concern_v the_o patronage_n or_o civil_a sovereignty_n over_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o legislative_a judiciary_n and_o dispensative_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o england_n over_o english_a subject_n which_o be_v no_o more_o than_o a_o reinfranchisement_n of_o ourselves_o from_o the_o upstart_n usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n of_o all_o which_o i_o have_v show_v he_o express_o the_o first_o source_n who_o begin_v they_o when_o and_o where_o before_o which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o give_v one_o instance_n of_o any_o such_o practice_n attempt_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o admit_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o it_o be_v that_o look_v asquint_o or_o awry_o upon_o the_o true_a case_n in_o controversy_n between_o we_o let_v the_o ingenuous_a reader_n judge_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v nor_o ever_o do_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a separation_n make_v yea_o make_v by_o we_o from_o their_o usurpation_n but_o i_o both_o do_v deny_v and_o do_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o separation_n make_v by_o we_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n or_o from_o the_o principle_n of_o christian_a unity_n this_o separation_n be_v make_v long_o since_o by_o themselves_o when_o they_o first_o introduce_v those_o novelty_n into_o the_o church_n and_o this_o separation_n of_o they_o from_o the_o pure_a primitive_a doctrine_n and_o discipiine_n of_o the_o church_n do_v acquit_v we_o and_o render_v they_o guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n before_o god_n and_o man_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v a_o vain_a and_o impertinent_a allegation_n of_o he_o to_o tell_v we_o that_o governor_n may_v lawful_o declare_v themselves_o public_o and_o solemn_o against_o the_o renouncer_n of_o their_o authority_n by_o excommunication_n unless_o he_o can_v show_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v such_o a_o absolute_a sovereignty_n over_o we_o as_o he_o imagine_v extend_v itself_o to_o all_o those_o act_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o that_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n they_o procee_v due_o in_o a_o legal_a manner_n and_o especial_o that_o they_o do_v not_o mistake_v their_o own_o usurpation_n for_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n as_o we_o affirm_v and_o know_v they_o do_v his_o whole_a discourse_n about_o immediate_a tradition_n be_v a_o bundle_n of_o uncertain_a presumption_n and_o vain_a supposition_n first_o he_o suppose_v that_o his_o rule_n of_o so_o vast_a a_o multitude_n of_o eye-witness_n of_o visible_a thing_n be_v uniform_a and_o universal_a but_o he_o be_v quite_o mistake_v the_o practi●e_n be_v different_a the_o papalm_n make_v law_n for_o their_o usurpation_n and_o the_o three_o order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n make_v law_n against_o they_o to_o who_o in_o probability_n shall_v our_o ancestor_n adhere_v to_o their_o ow●_n patriot_n or_o to_o stranger_n second_o he_o presume_v that_o this_o uniform_a practice_n of_o his_o ancestor_n be_v invariable_a without_o any_o shadow_n of_o change_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o less_o first_o investiture_n be_v in_o the_o crown_n and_o a_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n make_v to_o the_o king_n without_o any_o scruple_n even_o by_o lanfranke_n and_o anselm_n both_o stranger_n afterward_o the_o investiture_n be_v decry_v as_o profane_v and_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n forbid_v next_o a_o new_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v devise_v of_o clergiman_n to_o the_o pope_n first_o only_a for_o archbishop_n then_o for_o all_o prelate_n and_o this_o oath_n at_o first_o be_v moderate_a to_o observe_v the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o short_o after_o more_o tyrannous_a to_o maintain_v the_o royalty_n of_o saint_n peter_n as_o their_o own_o pontifical_n the_o old_a and_o the_o new_a do_v witness_v first_o when_o they_o take_v away_o investiture_n from_o the_o crown_n they_o be_v all_o
their_o fore_a father_n to_o be_v the_o infallible_a voice_n of_o the_o church_n at_o other_o time_n he_o make_v the_o extent_n of_o papal_a power_n to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o indifferency_n d._n wherein_o every_o church_n be_v free_a to_o hold_v their_o own_o opinion_n in_o his_o rule_n of_o discipline_n he_o make_v st._n peter_n only_o to_o be_v the_o head_n the_o chief_a the_o prince_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o first_o mover_n in_o the_o church_n all_o which_o in_o a_o right_a sense_n we_o approve_v or_o do_v not_o oppose_v why_o do_v he_o not_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v a_o visible_a monarch_n a_o absolute_a sovereign_n invest_v with_o a_o plenitude_n of_o power_n sovereign_a legislative_a judiciary_n dispensative_a all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v first_o mover_n in_o the_o church_n even_o as_o well_o as_o st._n peter_n except_o only_o his_o primacy_n of_o order_n which_o we_o allow_v when_o your_o man_n come_v to_o answer_v this_o they_o feign_v the_o apostle_n be_v all_o equal_a in_o relation_n to_o christian_a people_n but_o not_o in_o relation_n to_o one_o another_o yes_o even_o in_o relation_n to_o themselves_o and_o one_o another_o as_o have_v beme_fw-mi express_o declare_v long_o since_o in_o the_o first_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n not_o now_o to_o be_v contradict_v by_o they_o crab._n petrus_n &_o joannes_n aequalis_fw-la sunt_fw-la ad_fw-la alterutrum_fw-la dignitatis_fw-la peter_n and_o john_n be_v of_o equal_a dignity_n one_o towards_o another_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n may_v confist_n with_o a_o equality_n of_o dignity_n but_o a_o supremacy_n of_o power_n take_v away_o all_o parity_n par_n in_o parem_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la potestatem_fw-la he_o be_v blind_a who_o do_v no_o see_v in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o supremacy_n or_o sovereignty_n of_o power_n do_v not_o rest_n in_o the_o person_n of_o any_o one_o single_a apostle_n but_o in_o the_o apostolical_a college_n these_o indefinite_a generality_n he_o style_v determinate_a point_n it_o may_v be_v determinate_a for_o the_o general_a truth_n but_o indeterminate_a for_o the_o particular_a manner_n about_o which_o all_o the_o controversy_n be_v yet_o he_o who_o never_o want_v demonstrative_a argument_n to_o prove_v what_o he_o list_v will_v make_v it_o evident_a out_o of_o the_o very_a word_n reformation_n which_o we_o own_o and_o extol_v that_o we_o have_v break_v the_o rule_n of_o unity_n in_o discipline_n if_o he_o do_v he_o have_v good_a luck_n for_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o may_v prove_v that_o all_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n both_o general_n and_o provincial_n have_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n by_o own_v and_o extol_v the_o very_a word_n reformation_n both_o name_n and_o thing_n as_o for_o the_o point_n of_o our_o reformation_n i_o do_v not_o refer_v he_o to_o platonical_a idea_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o concave_n of_o the_o moon_n but_o to_o our_o law_n and_o statute_n make_v by_o all_o the_o order_n of_o our_o kingdom_n church_n and_o commonwealth_n not_o as_o they_o be_v wrest_v by_o the_o tongue_n and_o pen_n of_o our_o adversary_n malice_n may_v be_v a_o good_a informer_n but_o a_o bad_a judge_n but_o as_o they_o be_v expound_v by_o the_o genuine_a and_o orthodox_n son_n of_o the_o english_a church_n by_o our_o prince_n by_o our_o synod_n by_o our_o subsequent_a parliament_n by_o our_o theologian_n by_o our_o most_o judicious_a lawyer_n in_o their_o injunction_n in_o their_o act_n in_o their_o canon_n in_o their_o write_n which_o he_o may_v meet_v with_o if_o he_o have_v such_o a_o mind_n in_o earnest_n without_o any_o great_a search_n in_o every_o library_n or_o stationer_n shop_n ephesus_n sect_n i._o cap._n xi_o we_o do_v not_o suffer_v any_o man_n to_o reject_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o his_o pleasure_n yet_o neither_o do_v we_o look_v upon_o they_o as_o essentials_n of_o save_a faith_n or_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n but_o in_o a_o mean_a as_o pious_a opinion_n fit_v for_o the_o preservation_n of_o unity_n neither_o do_v we_o oblige_v any_o man_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o only_o not_o to_o contradict_v they_o yet_o neither_o be_v the_o bishop_n get_v into_o a_o wood_n nor_o leave_v his_o reader_n in_o another_o further_o from_o know_v what_o these_o doctrine_n of_o save_a faith_n be_v than_o he_o be_v at_o first_o it_o be_v mr._n sergeant_n eyesight_n that_o fail_v he_o through_o too_o much_o light_n which_o make_v he_o mistake_v his_o ancient_a creed_n for_o a_o wood_n and_o the_o article_n for_o tree_n person_n who_o be_v goggle_v eye_v seldom_o see_v well_o wherein_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v comprehend_v and_o although_o he_o inquire_v 487_o where_o be_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n the_o sacrament_n baptism_n of_o child_n the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o acknowledge_v there_o be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o scripture_n to_o be_v be_v find_v in_o the_o creed_n the_o bishop_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v gravel_v with_o s●ch_n doughty_a question_n that_o he_o pity_v his_o simplicity_n and_o return_v he_o for_o answer_v that_o if_o he_o be_v not_o mop-eyed_a he_o may_v find_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o divine_a person_n in_o his_o creed_n that_o the_o sacrament_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v reckon_v among_o the_o credenda_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v but_o among_o the_o agenda_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v act_v and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v not_o a_o particular_a doctrine_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o the_o rule_n wherein_o and_o whereby_o all_o fundamental_a doctrine_n or_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v comprehend_v and_o try_v so_o still_o his_o truth_n remain_v unshaken_a that_o the_o creed_n be_v a_o summary_n of_o all_o particular_a point_n of_o save_a faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v he_o proceed_v 487_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n since_o the_o reformation_n no_o particular_a form_n of_o government_n in_o stead_n of_o that_o they_o renounce_v a_o grievous_a accusation_n we_o have_v no_o need_n to_o introduce_v new_a form_n have_v preserve_v the_o old_a they_o who_o do_v only_o weed_v a_o garden_n have_v no_o need_n to_o set_v new_a plant_n we_o have_v the_o primitive_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n and_o neither_o want_n spiritual_a nor_o ecclesiastical_a nor_o political_a government_n if_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v against_o it_o cough_v out_o and_o spare_v not_o and_o although_o we_o want_v such_o a_o free_a and_o general_a communion_n with_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o we_o can_v wish_v and_o such_o as_o bishop_n have_v one_o with_o another_o by_o their_o form_a letter_n yet_o we_o have_v it_o in_o our_o desire_n and_o that_o we_o have_v it_o not_o actual_o it_o be_v principal_o your_o fault_n who_o make_v your_o usurpation_n to_o be_v condition_n of_o your_o communion_n and_o so_o i_o leave_v he_o declaim_v against_o library_n of_o book_n fill_v with_o dead_a word_n and_o thousand_o of_o volume_n scarce_o to_o be_v examine_v in_o a_o man_n whole_a life_n time_n and_o quibble_v about_o forefather_n and_o inherit_v and_o reformation_n and_o manasseh_n ben_n israel_n and_o repeat_v the_o same_o thing_n over_o and_o over_o again_o as_o if_o no_o man_n do_v understand_v he_o who_o do_v not_o hear_v he_o say_v over_o the_o same_o thing_n a_o hundred_o time_n he_o charge_v i_o that_o have_v grant_v that_o they_o and_o we_o do_v both_o maintain_v his_o rule_n of_o unity_n 490._o yet_o i_o do_v immediate_o disgrace_v it_o by_o add_v that_o the_o question_n be_v only_o who_o have_v change_v that_o doctrine_n or_o this_o discipline_n we_o or_o they_o we_o by_o substraction_n or_o they_o by_o addition_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v the_o pretend_a rule_n be_v no_o rule_n at_o all_o when_o he_o and_o his_o merry_a stationer_n be_v set_v upon_o the_o pin_n of_o make_v contradiction_n doubtless_o this_o be_v dub_v a_o famous_a contradiction_n or_o a_o absurdity_n at_o least_o as_o if_o a_o man_n may_v not_o hold_v one_o thing_n in_o his_o judgement_n and_o pursue_v another_o in_o his_o practice_n profess_v one_o thing_n in_o word_n and_o perform_v another_o in_o deed_n video_fw-la melior_fw-la a_o proboque_fw-la deterior_fw-la a_o sequor_fw-la medea_n see_v that_o which_o be_v right_a and_o approve_v it_o but_o swerve_v altogether_o from_o it_o in_o her_o practice_n 18_o they_o profess_v say_v st._n paul_n that_o they_o know_v god_n but_o in_o work_n they_o deny_v he_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n profess_v in_o word_n to_o add_v nothing_o to_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n but_o in_o their_o deed_n they_o do_v add_v and_o add_v
it_o seem_v by_o what_o pass_v late_o between_o we_o that_o he_o understand_v the_o rule_n of_o opposition_n or_o right_a contradiction_n better_o than_o yourself_o first_o the_o emphasis_n lie_v not_o in_o the_o word_n true_a but_o in_o the_o word_n say_v and_o censure_n can_v a_o man_n believe_v or_o hold_v his_o own_o religion_n to_o be_v true_a but_o he_o must_v necessary_o say_v or_o censure_v another_o man_n which_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v opposite_a to_o it_o to_o be_v false_a truth_n and_o falsehood_n be_v contradictory_n or_o of_o eternal_a disjunction_n but_o there_o be_v a_o mean_a between_o believe_v or_o hold_v my_o own_o religion_n to_o be_v true_a and_o say_v or_o censure_v another_o man_n which_o perhaps_o be_v opposite_a to_o be_v false_a both_o more_o prudentiall_a and_o more_o charitable_a that_o be_v silence_n to_o look_v circumspect_o to_o myself_o and_o leave_v other_o man_n to_o stand_v or_o fall_v to_o their_o own_o master_n s._n cyprian_n do_v believe_v or_o hold_v his_o own_o opinion_n of_o rebaptisation_n to_o be_v true_a yet_o do_v not_o censure_v the_o opposite_a to_o be_v false_a or_o remove_v any_o man_n from_o his_o communion_n for_o it_o rabshakeh_n be_v more_o censorious_a than_o hezekiah_n and_o down_o right_a atheist_n then_o conscionable_a christian_n second_o that_o which_o he_o call_v his_o religion_n be_v no_o more_o in_o truth_n then_o his_o opinion_n and_o different_a opinion_n be_v style_v different_a religion_n in_o opinion_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o hold_v with_o any_o party_n much_o less_o to_o censure_v other_o party_n sometime_o seem_v different_a opinion_n be_v both_o true_a and_o all_o the_o opposition_n be_v but_o a_o contention_n about_o word_n and_o then_o mutual_a censure_n be_v vain_a sometime_o they_o be_v both_o false_a and_o then_o there_o be_v more_o use_n of_o mutual_a charity_n then_o mutual_a censure_n and_o evermore_o whether_o true_a or_o false_a a_o error_n against_o charity_n be_v much_o great_a than_o a_o mere_a speculative_a error_n in_o judgement_n prejudice_n and_o self-love_n be_v like_o a_o colour_a glass_n which_o make_v every_o thing_n we_o discern_v through_o it_o to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o colour_n and_o on_o the_o otherside_n rancour_n and_o animosity_n like_o the_o tongue_n infect_v with_o choler_n make_v the_o sweet_a meat_n to_o taste_v bitter_a in_o each_o respect_n censure_n be_v dangerous_a and_o his_o principle_n pernicious_a that_o he_o who_o do_v not_o censure_v every_o religion_n whieh_o he_o repute_v contrary_a to_o his_o own_o have_v no_o religion_n i_o set_v down_o some_o principle_n whereof_o this_o be_v the_o first_o particular_a church_n may_v fall_v into_o error_n he_o answer_v it_o be_v true_a if_o by_o error_n he_o mean_v opinion_n only_o no_o i_o mean_v fundamental_a error_n also_o and_o not_o only_o fall_v into_o some_o fundamental_a error_n but_o apostate_n from_o christ_n and_o turn_v turk_n and_o change_v their_o bible_n into_o the_o alchor●a_n whereof_o we_o have_v visible_a experience_n in_o the_o world_n he_o answer_v that_o principle_n be_v not_o so_o undeniable_a as_o i_o think_v in_o case_n that_o particular_a church_n adhere_v firm_o to_o her_o rule_n of_o faith_n immediate_a tradition_n well_o but_o we_o see_v visible_o with_o our_o eye_n that_o many_o particular_a church_n have_v not_o adhere_v to_o any_o tradition_n universal_a or_o particular_a mediate_v or_o immediate_a but_o have_v abandon_v all_o apostolical_a tradition_n then_o to_o what_o purpose_n serve_v his_o exception_n in_o case_n that_o church_n adhere_v firm_o to_o immediate_a tradition_n when_o all_o the_o world_n see_v that_o they_o have_v not_o adhere_v firm_o to_o apostolical_a tradition_n his_o preservative_n be_v much_o like_o that_o which_o a_o old_a seaman_n give_v a_o freshwater_n passenger_n when_o he_o be_v to_o go_v to_o sea_n to_o put_v so_o many_o pebble_n stone_n into_o his_o mouth_n with_o assurance_n that_o he_o shall_v not_o cast_v while_o he_o hold_v they_o between_o his_o tooth_n what_o sort_n of_o tradition_n ought_v to_o be_v repute_v apostolical_a what_o not_o i_o have_v show_v former_o my_o second_o principle_n be_v that_o all_o error_n be_v not_o essentials_n or_o fundamental_n he_o demand_v what_o be_v this_o to_o his_o proposition_n which_o speak_v of_o religion_n not_o of_o opinion_n very_o much_o because_o he_o make_v opinion_n to_o be_v essentials_n of_o his_o religion_n as_o we_o see_v in_o the_o new_a creed_n of_o pius_n of_o four_o so_o do_v not_o we_o to_o the_o three_o principle_n we_o agree_v thus_o far_o that_o a_o error_n de_fw-fr side_n formaliter_fw-la or_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v essentials_n of_o faith_n do_v destroy_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n i_o add_v that_o error_n in_o those_o thing_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la fidei_fw-la materialiter_fw-la that_o be_v in_o inferior_a question_n which_o happen_v in_o or_o about_o thing_n believe_v or_o which_o be_v not_o in_o essentials_n howsoever_o they_o may_v be_v late_o crowd_v into_o the_o catalogue_n of_o essentials_n do_v not_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n my_o four_o principle_n be_v that_o every_o one_o be_v bind_v according_a to_o the_o just_a extent_n of_o his_o power_n to_o free_v himself_o from_o such_o error_n as_o be_v not_o in_o essentials_n he_o answer_v why_o so_o my_o lord_n if_o those_o error_n be_v not_o essential_a they_o leave_v accord_v to_o your_o own_o ground_n sufficient_a mean_n of_o salvation_n and_o the_o true_a be_v of_o a_o church_n how_o prove_v you_o then_o you_o ought_v to_o break_v church_n communion_n etc._n etc._n as_o if_o no_o error_n ought_v to_o be_v remedy_v but_o only_o those_o which_o be_v absolute_o exclusive_a from_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n as_o if_o those_o error_n which_o be_v only_o impeditive_a of_o salvation_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v eschew_v the_o least_o error_n maintain_v or_o commit_v against_o the_o dictate_v of_o conscience_n be_v a_o sin_n every_o good_a christian_n ought_v to_o do_v his_o uttermost_a endeavonr_n to_o free_v himself_o from_o sin_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v of_o it_o yes_o say_v he_o but_o not_o to_o break_v church_n communion_n which_o be_v essential_o destructive_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n or_o to_o endanger_v our_o soul_n where_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n first_o they_o who_o free_v themselves_o from_o know_a error_n do_v not_o thereby_o break_v church_n communion_n but_o they_o who_o make_v their_o error_n to_o be_v a_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n let_v he_o hear_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n 4._o in_o case_n a_o particular_a church_n do_v require_v profession_n of_o her_o heresy_n as_o a_o condition_n of_o communicate_v with_o she_o division_n from_o she_o in_o this_o case_n be_v no_o schism_n or_o sin_n but_o virtue_n and_o necessary_a where_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o material_a heresy_n it_o be_v they_o who_o make_v their_o error_n the_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n and_o therefore_o the_o schism_n and_o sinly_v at_o their_o door_n second_o schism_n do_v not_o destroy_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n for_o the_o church_n continue_v a_o church_n still_o after_o the_o schismatic_n be_v go_v out_o of_o it_o but_o it_o destroy_v the_o schismatic_n themselves_o last_o to_o free_v ourselves_o from_o know_a error_n when_o they_o be_v make_v condition_n of_o communion_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v dangerous_a to_o salvation_n that_o as_o the_o bishop_n confess_v true_o it_o be_v virtue_n and_o necessary_a the_o second_o proof_n of_o our_o moderation_n be_v our_o charity_n that_o we_o leave_v they_o as_o one_o shall_v leave_v his_o father_n house_n while_o it_o be_v infect_v with_o some_o contagious_a sickness_n with_o a_o hearty_a desire_n to_o return_v again_o so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v cleanse_v this_o charitable_a desire_n of_o we_o i_o prove_v by_o our_o daily_a prayer_n for_o they_o in_o our_o litany_n that_o god_n will_v bring_v they_o out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o error_n into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o particular_o by_o our_o prayer_n on_o good_a friday_n for_o they_o that_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n upon_o all_o heretic_n and_o fetch_v they_o home_o to_o his_o flock_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v among_o the_o remnant_n of_o true_a israelite_n and_o be_v make_v one_o fold_n under_o one_o shepherd_n jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n and_o this_o our_o charity_n be_v the_o more_o conspicuous_a by_o this_o that_o in_o bulla_fw-la caenae_fw-la that_o be_v the_o next_o day_n before_o anniversary_o they_o do_v as_o solemn_o curse_v and_o anathematise_v we_o to_o this_o he_o answer_v first_o that_o they_o do_v more_o for_o we_o and_o hazard_v their_o life_n daily_a to_o convert_v we_o they_o hazard_v their_o life_n to_o serve_v a_o foreign_a interest_n not_o to_o convert_v but_o
council_n than_o there_o will_v need_v no_o turn_v out_o second_o he_o object_v so_o a_o man_n may_v reject_v all_o government_n of_o the_o church_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n all_o the_o sacrament_n all_o the_o scripture_n and_o yet_o continue_v a_o member_n of_o god_n church_n why_o so_o when_o i_o say_v the_o creed_n be_v a_o ●ufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n or_o credendorum_fw-la of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v i_o neither_o say_v nor_o mean_v that_o it_o be_v regula_fw-la agendorum_fw-la a_o rule_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o be_v practise_v such_o as_o the_o act_n of_o discipline_n and_o of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o creed_n contain_v enough_o for_o salvation_n touch_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n before_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la be_v add_v to_o it_o and_o there_o be_v great_a cause_n to_o doubt_v that_o the_o contention_n of_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n about_o this_o subject_a be_v but_o a_o mere_a logomachy_n or_o strife_n about_o word_n the_o scripture_n and_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o two_o different_a rule_n of_o faith_n but_o one_o and_o the_o same_o rule_n dilate_v in_o the_o scripture_n contract_v in_o the_o creed_n the_o end_n of_o the_o creed_n be_v to_o contain_v all_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n or_o a_o summary_n of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la but_o in_o what_o particular_a write_n all_o these_o fundamental_a point_n be_v contain_v be_v no_o particular_a fundamental_a article_n itself_o nor_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n nor_o can_v be_v contain_v in_o it_o since_o it_o be_v apparent_a out_o of_o scripture_n itself_o that_o the_o creed_n be_v make_v and_o deposit_v with_o the_o church_n as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v full_o perfect_v arrian_n and_o socinian_o may_v perhaps_o wrest_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n to_o their_o heretical_a sense_n but_o not_o as_o it_o be_v explain_v by_o the_o first_o four_o general_n counsel_n which_o all_o orthodox_n christian_n do_v admit_v he_o say_v they_o and_o we_o differ_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o two_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o be_v the_o descent_n of_o christ_n into_o hell_n and_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o set_v not_o down_o wherein_o we_o differ_v he_o have_v reason_n to_o understand_v our_o difference_n have_v be_v of_o both_o church_n but_o i_o for_o my_o part_n do_v rather_o believe_v that_o he_o understand_v neither_o part_n right_a howsoever_o it_o be_v the_o different_a sense_n of_o a_o article_n do_v make_v a_o heretic_n after_o it_o be_v define_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n not_o before_o he_o say_v he_o have_v already_o show_v in_o the_o forego_n section_n that_o the_o protestant_a ground_n have_v leave_v no_o order_n and_o subordination_n of_o universal_a government_n in_o god_n church_n but_o he_o have_v neither_o show_v it_o in_o the_o forego_n section_n nor_o any_o where_o else_o nor_o be_v able_a to_o show_v it_o we_o have_v the_o same_o subordination_n that_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o inferior_a clergy_n man_n to_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n to_o archbishop_n of_o archbishop_n to_o patriarch_n and_o of_o patriarch_n to_o a_o general_n council_n or_o as_o general_n as_o may_v be_v let_v he_o show_v any_o one_o link_n of_o this_o subordination_n that_o we_o have_v weaken_v i_o say_v we_o acknowledge_v not_o a_o virtual_a church_n or_o one_o man_n as_o infallible_a as_o the_o universal_a church_n he_o rejoin_v nor_o they_o neither_o i_o wish_v it_o be_v so_o general_o but_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n in_o their_o hand_n who_o only_o we_o accuse_v in_o this_o behalf_n do_v maintain_v the_o contrary_a that_o a_o general_n council_n without_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v that_o the_o pope_n with_o any_o council_n general_n or_o particular_a can_v err_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v radicate_v in_o the_o pope_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n prayer_n for_o s._n peter_n that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v not_o in_o a_o company_n of_o counsellor_n nor_o in_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v define_v temerarious_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n which_o concern_v the_o whole_a church_n what_o a_o general_n council_n be_v and_o what_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v and_o who_o ought_v to_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o as_o heretic_n i_o have_v show_v already_o namely_o all_o those_o and_o only_o those_o who_o do_v either_o renounce_v their_o creed_n the_o badge_n of_o their_o christianity_n the_o same_o faith_n whereinto_o they_o be_v baptize_v or_o who_o differ_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o any_o article_n thereof_o have_v already_o be_v exclude_v as_o heretic_n by_o the_o sentence_n of_o a_o undoubted_a general_n council_n howsoever_o he_o sleight_v the_o controversy_n which_o they_o have_v among_o themselves_o concern_v the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n as_o if_o they_o be_v of_o no_o moment_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o of_o so_o little_a concernment_n to_o be_v so_o slight_v what_o avail_v it_o to_o say_v they_o have_v the_o church_n for_o a_o infallible_a judge_n while_o they_o be_v not_o certain_a or_o do_v not_o know_v what_o the_o church_n be_v or_o who_o this_o infallible_a judge_n be_v may_v not_o a_o man_n say_v unto_o they_o as_o elijah_n say_v unto_o the_o israelite_n why_o halt_v you_o between_o two_o opinion_n or_o rather_o why_o halt_n yet_o betwixt_o five_o or_o six_o opinion_n if_o the_o pope_n alone_o be_v infallible_a judge_n follow_v he_o if_o a_o general_n council_n alone_o be_v this_o infallible_a judge_n follow_v it_o if_o the_o essential_a church_n be_v the_o infallible_a judge_n adhere_v to_o it_o if_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o general_n council_n o●_n the_o pope_n and_o a_o particular_a council_n or_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o conclave_n of_o cardinal_n be_v this_o infallible_a judge_n follow_v they_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o their_o universal_a church_n be_v as_o visible_a as_o the_o sun_n at_o noon_n day_n to_o wit_n those_o country_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n without_o doubt_n they_o be_v visible_a enough_o but_o it_o be_v as_o visible_a that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o universal_a church_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n they_o be_v the_o elder_n christian_n and_o more_o numerous_a four_o for_o one_o both_o patriarch_n and_o people_n it_o be_v against_o reason_n that_o one_o single_a protopatriarch_n shall_v cast_v out_o four_o out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v both_o party_n and_o judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n but_o here_o it_o end_v not_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v have_v his_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v one_o homogeneous_a body_n he_o must_v cast_v out_o a_o great_a many_o more_o yet_o and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v suspect_v this_o very_a dispatcher_n himself_o among_o the_o rest_n for_o all_o his_o show_n they_o flatter_v the_o pope_n with_o general_n term_n of_o head_n and_o chief_a governor_n and_o first_o mover_n which_o signify_v nothing_o but_o in_o reality_n they_o will_v have_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o the_o duke_n of_o venice_n be_v in_o the_o venetian_a common_a wealth_n that_o be_v less_o than_o any_o single_a senator_n or_o that_o which_o a_o general_n master_n be_v in_o a_o religious_a order_n 14._o above_o all_o priour_o and_o provincial_n but_o subject_a to_o a_o congregation_n general_n wherein_o do_v these_o man_n differ_v from_o we_o sect._n 8._o that_o all_o prince_n ●nd_v republic_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n do_v in_o effect_v the_o same_o thing_n whic●_n henry_n the_o eight_o do_v when_o they_o have_v occasion_n or_o at_o least_o do_v plead_v for_o it_o this_o be_v the_o title_n and_o this_o be_v my_o scope_n of_o my_o five_o ground_n which_o i_o make_v good_a by_o the_o law_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o emperor_n with_o their_o counsel_n and_o synod_n and_o electoral_a college_n by_o the_o law_n of_o france_n the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n the_o act_n of_o their_o parliament_n and_o declaration_n of_o their_o university_n by_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n his_o counsel_n his_o parliament_n in_o sicily_n in_o castille_n in_o brabant_n and_o flanders_n by_o the_o sigh_n of_o portugal_n and_o their_o blea●ings_n and_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o university_n of_o lisbon_n by_o the_o law_n and_o proclamation_n of_o the_o republic_n of_o venice_n this_o i_o make_v good_a in_o every_o particular_a branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o of_o england_n the_o patronage_n of_o the_o english_a church_n the_o right_a to_o call_v and_o confirm_v synod_n to_o confer_v bishopric_n to_o
in_o the_o chief_a clergy_n who_o they_o call_v cardinal_n as_o secure_v a_o course_n as_o man_n wit_n can_v invent_v as_o chief_a as_o their_o cardinal_n be_v the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o they_o be_v but_o ordinary_a parish_n priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o old_a the_o cardinal_n indeed_o have_v to_o do_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o vacancy_n but_o what_o pretence_n have_v they_o from_o st._n peter_n what_o have_v they_o to_o do_v with_o the_o universal_a monarchy_n of_o the_o church_n before_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o thei●_n headship_n be_v christ_n own_o ordination_n now_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o headship_n be_v sometime_o in_o the_o college_n of_o cardinal_n and_o that_o it_o be_v as_o secure_v a_o course_n as_o man_n wit_n can_v invent_v what_o a_o contradiction_n will_v he_o make_v of_o this_o he_o demand_v do_v the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n show_v that_o we_o have_v one_o common_a certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n or_o any_o particular_a sort_n of_o government_n oblige_v we_o to_o a_o unity_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o govern_v i_o do_v show_v he_o one_o common_a certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n even_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o a_o particular_a sort_n of_o government_n even_o the_o same_o be_v use_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n what_o be_o i_o the_o better_a he_o will_v take_v no_o notice_n of_o they_o because_o i_o will_v not_o fix_v upon_o that_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o form_n of_o government_n which_o he_o fancieth_n yet_o i_o be_o for_o tradition_n as_o well_o as_o he_o but_o it_o be_v universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n such_o a_o tradition_n be_v the_o creed_n and_o in_o deed_n be_v that_o very_a tradition_n which_o be_v so_o renown_a in_o the_o ancient_n he_o charge_v i_o with_o say_v that_o heretic_n can_v have_v no_o baptism_n let_v he_o either_o make_v his_o accusation_n good_a or_o suffer_v as_o a_o falsifier_n all_o that_o i_o say_v be_v turk_n jew_n heretic_n and_o christian_n have_v not_o the_o same_o baptism_n the_o reason_n be_v plain_a because_o turk_n and_o jew_n have_v no_o baptism_n at_o all_o second_o we_o ought_v to_o distinguish_v between_o the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n and_o heretical_a baptism_n if_o the_o baptism_n itself_o be_v good_a the_o administration_n of_o it_o by_o heretic_n do_v not_o invalidate_v it_o at_o all_o but_o if_o the_o heretic_n baptise_v after_o a_o heretical_a form_n as_o without_o due_a matter_n or_o not_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o trinity_n such_o baptism_n be_v heretical_a and_o naught_o but_o all_o this_o be_v needless_a to_o understand_v the_o right_a scope_n of_o my_o word_n i_o say_v that_o a_o body_n cousi_v of_o jews_n turk_n heretic_n and_o christian_n have_v not_o the_o same_o baptism_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o every_o one_o of_o these_o want_v true_a baptism_n he_o may_v as_o well_o charge_v i_o with_o say_v that_o christian_n can_v have_v no_o true_a baptism_n i_o have_v manifest_v elsewhere_o that_o the_o creed_n be_v a_o list_n of_o all_o fundamental_n 2._o and_o in_o the_o same_o section_n and_o chapter_n the_o reader_n shall_v find_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o falsifier_n but_o mr._n serjeant_n be_v both_o a_o egregious_a calumniator_n and_o falsifier_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n i_o to●ke_v the_o word_n paganism_n in_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a sense_n for_o infidelity_n as_o it_o be_v contradistinguish_v to_o christianity_n the_o true_a reason_n of_o that_o appellation_n be_v because_o country_n village_n do_v continue_v long_o in_o their_o infidelity_n after_o city_n be_v convert_v to_o christianity_n so_o the_o turk_n be_v the_o only_a pagan_n which_o we_o have_v now_o in_o this_o part_n of_o the_o world_n what_o a_o piece_n of_o gotham_n wisdom_n be_v this_o to_o quarrel_v about_o name_n when_o we_o agree_v upon_o the_o thing_n turk_n and_o pagan_n in_o my_o sense_n be_v the_o same_o thing_n both_o infidel_n but_o he_o instruct_v the_o learned_a bishop_n that_o the_o turk_n acknowledge_v a_o god_n so_o do_v the_o pagan_n also_o if_o lactantius_n say_v true_a non_fw-la ego_fw-la illum_fw-la lapidem_fw-la colo_fw-la quem_fw-la video_fw-la sed_fw-la seruio_fw-la eiquem_fw-la non_fw-la video_fw-la he_o add_v that_o i_o affirm_v the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n hold_v in_o the_o year_n 430_o order_v something_o concern_v turk_n which_o spring_v not_o up_o till_o the_o year_n 630_o and_o call_v this_o good_a sport_n if_o there_o be_v any_o sport_n it_o be_v to_o see_v his_o childish_a vanity_n if_o i_o list_v to_o play_v with_o word_n i_o can_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o mahometan_n spring_v up_o about_o the_o year_n 630_o the_o turk_n many_o age_n after_o but_o the_o answer_n be_v plain_a and_o easy_a the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n do_v give_v order_n for_o all_o age_n ensue_v concern_v infidel_n but_o turk_n be_v infidel_n and_o so_o it_o give_v order_n concern_v turk_n socinian_o and_o arrian_n may_v admit_v the_o apostle_n creed_n interpret_v their_o own_o way_n but_o they_o ought_v to_o admit_v it_o as_o it_o be_v interpret_v by_o the_o first_a four_o general_n counsel_n that_o they_o do_v not_o and_o so_o they_o believe_v not_o all_o fundamental_n as_o they_o shall_v do_v what_o he_o object_v further_a that_o puritan_n hold_v not_o the_o article_n of_o christ_n descent_n into_o hell_n and_o the_o roman_a catholic_n and_o protestant_n differ_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o two_o other_o article_n have_v be_v answer_v former_o the_o puritan_n will_v tell_v he_o that_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n descent_n have_v not_o be_v determine_v hitherto_o and_o i_o doubt_v much_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o romish_a and_o english_a tenet_n so_o well_o as_o he_o shall_v sect_n ix_o that_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n be_v most_o guilty_a of_o the_o schism_n my_o first_o charge_n be_v this_o that_o member_n of_o any_o society_n which_o leave_v its_o proper_a place_n to_o assume_v a_o high_a place_n in_o the_o body_n be_v schismatical_a but_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o party_n do_v not_o content_v themselves_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v the_o sister_n of_o other_o patriarchall_a church_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o many_o church_n unless_o she_o be_v lady_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n or_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v be_v the_o brother_n of_o other_o bishop_n or_o a_o fellow_n of_o other_o bishop_n as_o he_o be_v style_v of_o old_a unless_o he_o may_v be_v the_o lord_n and_o master_n of_o all_o bishop_n that_o the_o former_a be_v his_o proper_a place_n i_o clear_o prove_v by_o letter_n not_o of_o himself_o to_o other_o bishop_n that_o may_v be_v condiscension_n as_o for_o a_o general_n to_o call_v his_o officer_n fellow_n soldier_n but_o of_o other_o bishop_n to_o he_o no_o under_o officer_n dare_v presume_v to_o call_v his_o general_n fellow_n soldier_n that_o he_o assume_v the_o other_o place_n to_o himself_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o new_a creed_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o i_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n and_o i_o promise_v and_o swear_v true_a obedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o jesus_n christ._n and_o in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o all_o bishop_n swear_v to_o the_o pope_n jab_n bishop_n etc._n etc._n will_v be_v faith_n full_a to_o st._n peter_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a apostolical_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o our_o lord_n pope_n alexander_n etc._n etc._n there_o be_v a_o great_a distance_n between_o the_o old_a brother_n bishop_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n and_o this_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o their_o liegelord_n first_o he_o charge_v i_o that_o i_o do_v flat_o falsify_v his_o word_n which_o do_v never_o deny_v she_o to_o be_v a_o mother_n but_o a_o sister_n only_o either_o i_o falsify_v his_o word_n or_o he_o falsify_v i_o my_o word_n be_v these_o first_o they_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v not_o only_o the_o sister_n of_o all_o other_o patriarchall_a church_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o many_o church_n but_o to_o be_v the_o lady_n and_o mistress_n of_o all_o church_n the_o two_o former_a branch_n of_o sister_n and_o mother_n be_v both_o acknowledge_v the_o last_o only_o of_o lady_n and_o mistress_n be_v deny_v he_o falsify_v my_o word_n in_o his_o answer_n thus_o because_o she_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o be_v mistress_n where_o she_o be_v but_o sister_n to_o other_o church_n you_o see_v the_o word_n mother_n be_v leave_v out_o and_o because_o i_o bring_v it_o in_o again_o as_o i_o ought_v to_o make_v the_o argument_n as_o it_o be_v before_o his_o curtal_n of_o it_o i_o be_o become_v the_o falsifier_n with_o he_o and_o he_o who_o be_v the_o falsifier_n in_o earnest_n be_v innocent_a i_o
the_o searcher_n of_o all_o heart_n that_o what_o i_o say_v be_v true_a and_o his_o accusation_n be_v groundless_a calumny_n but_o as_o to_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n he_o add_v that_o these_o unusual_a expression_n be_v only_o these_o that_o christ_n have_v two_o distinct_a person_n and_o no_o distinct_a nature_n thus_o he_o say_v but_o what_o author_n what_o authority_n do_v he_o produce_v that_o any_o of_o these_o church_n be_v guilty_a of_o any_o such_o expression_n none_o at_o all_o because_o for_o all_o his_o good_a intelligence_n he_o have_v none_o to_o produce_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v able_a to_o produce_v any_o and_o so_o his_o good_a intelligence_n must_v end_v in_o smoke_n and_o stink_n as_o his_o most_o faithful_a protestation_n do_v before_o i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n to_o his_o shame_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o english_a church_n art_n 2._o that_o the_o two_o nature_n divine_a and_o humane_a be_v perfect_o and_o inseparable_o conjoin_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o person_n of_o christ._n do_v this_o agree_v with_o his_o counterfeit_a expression_n christ_n have_v two_o distinct_a person_n no_o distnct_a nature_n when_o i_o use_v this_o expression_n the_o best_o be_v we_o be_v either_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n of_o the_o lord_n floor_n but_o their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o these_o word_n the_o best_o be_v have_v no_o such_o immediate_a relation_n unto_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v we_o be_v either_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n but_o to_o the_o last_n word_n their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o make_v this_o the_o complete_a sense_n we_o be_v either_o wheat_n or_o chaff_n but_o the_o best_a be_v whether_o we_o be_v wheat_n or_o chaff_n their_o tongue_n must_v not_o winnow_v we_o what_o poor_a boyish_a pickquer_a be_v this_o in_o my_o reply_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n occasional_o i_o show_v the_o agreement_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n with_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o great_a question_n agitate_a between_o we_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n out_o of_o cyrill_a late_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o but_o in_o requital_n urge_v a_o passage_n out_o of_o mr._n rosse_n in_o his_o book_n call_v a_o view_n of_o all_o religion_n it_o be_v a_o unequal_a match_n between_o mr._n rosse_n a_o private_a stranger_n and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o a_o cause_n concern_v his_o own_o church_n i_o meddle_v not_o with_o mr._n rosse_n but_o leave_v he_o to_o abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o he_o be_v true_o cite_v or_o not_o but_o with_o mr._n serjeant_n i_o shall_v be_v bold_a to_o tell_v he_o that_o if_o he_o speak_v serious_o and_o bona_fw-la fide_fw-la he_o be_v mistake_v whole_o neither_o do_v the_o greek_n place_n much_o of_o their_o devotion_n in_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o paint_a image_n 4._o hear_v cyrill_n the_o patriarch_n we_o give_v leave_v to_o he_o that_o will_v to_o have_v the_o image_n of_o christ_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n but_o we_o disallow_v the_o adoration_n and_o worship_n of_o they_o as_o prohibit_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o another_o they_o give_v great_a honour_n to_o the_o virgin_n mary_n the_o mother_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o neither_o adore_v she_o nor_o implore_v her_o aid_n and_o for_o the_o intercession_n prayer_n help_v and_o merit_n of_o the_o saint_n take_v the_o word_n merit_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n that_o be_v not_o for_o desert_n but_o for_o acquisition_n i_o know_v no_o difference_n about_o they_o among_o those_o man_n who_o understand_v themselves_o but_o only_o about_o the_o last_o word_n which_o they_o invocate_v in_o their_o temple_n rather_o than_o church_n a_o comprecation_n both_o the_o grecian_n and_o we_o do_v allow_v a_o ultimate_a invocation_n both_o the_o grecian_n and_o we_o detest_v so_o do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o their_o doctrine_n but_o they_o vary_v from_o it_o in_o their_o practice_n it_o follow_v they_o place_v justification_n not_o in_o faith_n but_o in_o work_n most_o false_o hear_v hieremy_n the_o patriarch_n 13._o we_o must_v do_v good_a work_n but_o not_o confide_v in_o they_o and_o cyrill_v his_o successor_n we_o believe_v that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n not_o work_n before_o we_o can_v determine_v for_o who_o those_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a christian_n be_v in_o the_o question_n concern_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o know_v what_o the_o right_a state_n of_o this_o controversy_n be_v i_o have_v challenge_v they_o to_o go_v one_o step_n further_o into_o it_o then_o i_o do_v and_o they_o dare_v not_o or_o rather_o they_o can_v without_o blasphemy_n the_o next_o instance_n concern_v purgatory_n be_v so_o gross_a and_o notorion_n a_o mistake_n that_o it_o be_v a_o great_a shame_n to_o confute_v it_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o dead_a be_v better_v by_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o live_n which_o way_n be_v they_o better_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o damn_a be_v release_v or_o ease_v thereby_o the_o modern_a greek_n deny_v and_o so_o do_v we_o that_o there_o be_v any_o soul_n in_o purgatory_n to_o be_v help_v they_o deny_v and_o so_o do_v we_o that_o they_o may_v be_v help_v to_o the_o consummation_n of_o their_o blessedness_n and_o to_o a_o speedy_a union_n with_o their_o body_n by_o the_o resurrection_n thereof_o they_o do_v not_o deny_v no_o more_o do_v we_o we_o pray_v daily_o thy_o kingdom_n come_v and_o come_v lord_n jesus_n come_v quick_o and_o that_o we_o with_o this_o our_o brother_n and_o all_o other_o depart_v in_o the_o faith_n may_v have_v our_o perfect_a consummation_n and_o bless_v both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n they_o hate_v ecclesiastical_a tyranny_n and_o lie_v supposititious_a tradition_n so_o do_v we_o but_o if_o they_o be_v for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o genuine_a apostolical_a tradition_n god_n blessing_n on_o their_o heart_n so_o be_v we_o last_o the_o grecian_n know_v no_o feast_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la nor_o carry_v the_o sacrament_n up_o and_o down_o nor_o elevate_v it_o to_o be_v adore_v they_o adore_v christ_n in_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n so_o do_v we_o they_o do_v not_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n no_o more_o do_v we_o yet_o from_o hence_o he_o infer_v that_o there_o be_v not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n wherein_o they_o dissent_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n except_o that_o one_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n it_o be_v well_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v that_o yet_o the_o grecian_n agree_v with_o we_o and_o differ_v from_o they_o in_o his_o two_o rule_n or_o bond_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o rule_n of_o discipline_n the_o grecian_n and_o we_o have_v the_o same_o government_n of_o bishop_n under_o patriarch_n and_o primate_fw-la second_o in_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o grecian_n and_o we_o have_v both_o the_o same_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n both_o reject_v their_o apocryphal_a addition_n from_o the_o genuine_a canon_n they_o and_o we_o have_v both_o the_o same_o apostolical_a creed_n both_o reject_v the_o new_a addition_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o in_o sum_n they_o and_o we_o do_v both_o deny_v their_o transubstantiation_n their_o purgatory_n their_o justification_n by_o work_n in_o sensu_fw-la forensi_fw-la their_o doctrine_n of_o merit_n and_o supererogation_n their_o septenary_n number_n of_o the_o sacrament_n their_o image_n worship_n their_o pardon_n their_o private_a mass_n their_o half-communion_n and_o to_o be_v brief_a the_o grecian_n do_v renounce_v and_o reject_v all_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o the_o pope_n sovereignty_n over_o the_o catholic_n church_n by_o divine_a right_n as_o nilus_n say_v it_o be_v intolerable_a that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n will_v not_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o father_n since_o he_o have_v his_o dignity_n from_o the_o father_n second_o his_o legislative_a power_n as_o peter_z stewart_n vice-chancell_a of_o ingolstad_n witness_v that_o the_o grecian_n object_v it_o as_o a_o error_n to_o the_o latin_n that_o they_o make_v the_o pope_n commandment_n to_o be_v their_o canon_n and_o law_n three_o his_o judiciary_n power_n equal_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n or_o rather_o prefer_v he_o last_o his_o dispensative_a power_n accuse_v his_o pardon_n and_o dispensation_n as_o thing_n that_o open_v a_o ga●e_n to_o all_o kind_a of_o villainy_n i_o be_o glad_a that_o nilus_n be_v in_o his_o good_a grace_n to_o be_v style_v by_o he_o one_o of_o the_o grave_a bishop_n and_o author_n of_o that_o party_n for_o one_o moderate_a expression_n wherein_o he_o say_v no_o more_o than_o we_o say_v
otherside_n that_o church_n which_o shall_v not_o outward_o acquiesce_v after_o a_o legal_a determination_n and_o cease_v to_o disturb_v christian_a unity_n though_o her_o judgement_n may_v be_v sound_a yet_o her_o practice_n be_v schismatical_a this_o be_v the_o very_a case_n betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o england_n she_o obtrude_v doubtful_a opinion_n as_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o her_o own_o error_n as_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n which_o mr._n sergeant_n everywhere_o miss_v and_o mi_v with_o his_o praevarication_n i_o can_v more_o fit_o resemble_v his_o discourse_n then_o to_o a_o winter_n torrent_n which_o abound_v with_o water_n when_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o it_o but_o in_o summer_n when_o it_o shall_v be_v useful_a it_o be_v dry_v up_o so_o he_o be_v full_a of_o proof_n which_o he_o miscal_v demonstration_n where_o there_o be_v no_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o where_o the_o water_n stick_v in_o deed_n he_o be_v as_o mute_a as_o a_o fish_n he_o take_v great_a pain_n te_fw-la prove_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v infallible_a in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n who_o do_v he_o strike_v he_o beat_v but_o the_o air_n we_o say_v the_o same_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o his_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v this_o catholic_n church_n and_o that_o the_o difference_n between_o we_o be_v in_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n here_o where_o he_o shall_v demonstrate_v if_o he_o can_v he_o favour_v himself_o he_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a to_o deny_v that_o or_o doubt_n of_o it_o which_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_n world_n what_o be_v he_o seek_v sure_o he_o do_v not_o seek_v the_o question_n here_o in_o earnest_n but_o as_o he_o who_o seek_v for_o a_o hare_n under_o the_o lead_v because_o he_o must_v seek_v she_o as_o well_o where_o she_o be_v not_o as_o where_o she_o be_v we_o confess_v that_o writing_n add_v no_o new_a authority_n to_o tradition_n divine_a write_n and_o divine_a tradition_n apostolical_a write_n and_o apostolical_a tradition_n if_o they_o be_v both_o alike_o certain_a have_v the_o same_o authority_n and_o what_o great_a certainty_n can_v be_v imagine_v then_o the_o universal_a attestation_n of_o the_o catholic_n symbolical_a church_n of_o christ._n but_o the_o right_a controversy_n lie_v on_o the_o other_o hand_n we_o deny_v that_o the_o tradition_n whereupon_o they_o ground_n their_o opinion_n wherein_o we_o and_o they_o dissent_v be_v universal_a either_o in_o regard_n of_o time_n or_o place_n he_o endeavour_v with_o tooth_n and_o nail_n to_o establish_v the_o roman_a papacy_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la but_o for_o the_o extent_n of_o papal_a power_n he_o leave_v it_o free_a to_o prince_n commonwealth_n church_n university_n and_o particular_a doctor_n to_o dispute_v it_o and_o bind_v it_o and_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o their_o own_o privilege_n yet_o the_o main_a controversy_n i_o may_v say_v the_o only_a necessary_a controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o be_v about_o the_o extent_n of_o papal_a power_n as_o shall_v be_v see_v in_o due_a place_n if_o the_o pope_n will_v content_v himself_o with_o his_o exordium_n vnitatis_fw-la which_o be_v all_o that_o his_o primitive_a praedecessor_n have_v and_o be_v as_o much_o as_o a_o great_a part_n of_o his_o own_o son_n will_v allow_v he_o at_o this_o day_n we_o be_v not_o so_o hard_o heart_v and_o uncharitable_a for_o such_o a_o innocent_a title_n or_o office_n to_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o do_v envy_n he_o such_o a_o pre-eminence_n among_o patriarch_n as_o s._n pieter_n have_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o his_o own_o party_n among_o the_o apostle_n but_o this_o will_v not_o be_v accept_v either_o he_o will_v have_v all_o or_o none_o patronage_n ten_o first_o fruit_n investiture_n appeal_n legantine_n court_v and_o in_o one_o word_n a_o absolute_a sovereignty_n or_o nothing_o it_o be_v nothing_o unless_o he_o may_v bind_v all_o other_o bishop_n to_o maintain_v his_o usurp_a royalty_n under_o the_o pretence_a name_n of_o regalia_z sancti_fw-la petri_n by_o a_o oath_n contradictory_n to_o our_o old_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n although_o all_o these_o encroachment_n be_v direct_o destructive_a to_o the_o ancient_a law_n and_o liberty_n both_o of_o the_o british_a and_o english_a church_n so_o we_o have_v only_o cast_v of_o his_o boundless_a tiramny_n it_o be_v he_o and_o his_o court_n who_o have_v desert_v and_o disclaim_v his_o own_o just_a regulate_v authority_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o right_n state_v of_o the_o question_n but_o m._n serjeant_n lapwing_n like_o make_v the_o most_o pew_a and_o cry_v when_o he_o be_v further_a from_o his_o nest_n what_o he_o be_v i_o neither_o know_v nor_o much_o regard_n i_o conclude_v he_o be_v but_o a_o young_a divine_a because_o he_o himself_o style_v his_o treatise_n the_o prentisage_n of_o his_o endeavour_n in_o controversy_n pag_n 2._o and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a boldness_n for_o a_o single_a apprentice_n if_o he_o do_v not_o shoot_v other_o man_n bolt_n after_o he_o have_v bestow_v a_o little_a rhetorical_a varnish_n upon_o they_o to_o take_v up_o the_o buckler_n against_o two_o old_a doctor_n at_o once_o and_o with_o so_o much_o youthful_a presumption_n of_o victory_n that_o his_o title_n sound_v nothing_o but_o disarm_v and_o dispatch_v and_o knock_v down_o as_o if_o caesar_n motto_n i_o come_v i_o see_v i_o overcome_v be_v his_o birthright_n he_o that_o be_v such_o a_o conqueror_n in_o his_o apprentisage_n what_o victory_n may_v not_o he_o promise_v himself_o when_o he_o be_v grow_v to_o be_v a_o experience_a master_n in_o his_o profession_n but_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n that_o his_o over_o dare_a do_v not_o bring_v he_o in_o the_o conclusion_n to_o catch_v a_o tartar_n that_o be_v in_o plain_a english_a to_o lose_v himself_o the_o cause_n which_o he_o oppugn_v be_v build_v upon_o a_o rock_n though_o the_o wind_n bluster_n and_o the_o wave_n beat_v yet_o it_o can_v fall_v i_o hear_v moreover_o by_o those_o who_o seem_v to_o know_v he_o that_o he_o be_v sometime_o a_o novice_n of_o our_o english_a church_n who_o desert_v his_o mother_n before_o he_o know_v she_o if_o it_o be_v so_o to_o do_v he_o owe_v a_o double_a account_n for_o schism_n and_o one_o which_o he_o will_v not_o claw_v of_o so_o easy_o and_o if_o no_o man_n have_v inform_v i_o i_o shall_v have_v suspect_v so_o much_o of_o myself_o we_o find_v stranger_n civil_a and_o courteon_n to_o we_o every_o where_o in_o our_o exile_n except_o they_o be_v set_v on_o by_o some_o of_o our_o own_o but_o sundry_a of_o those_o who_o have_v run_v over_o from_o we_o prove_v violent_a and_o bitter_a adversary_n without_o any_o provocation_n as_o mr._n serjeant_n for_o example_n i_o can_v include_v all_o in_o the_o same_o gild_n whether_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o consciousness_n of_o their_o own_o guilt_n in_o desert_v we_o at_o this_o time_n especial_o or_o the_o contentment_n to_o gain_v companion_n or_o fellow_n proselyte_n or_o they_o find_v it_o necessary_a to_o procure_v themselves_o to_o be_v trust_v or_o it_o be_v enjoin_v to_o they_o by_o their_o superior_n as_o a_o policy_n to_o make_v the_o breach_n irreparable_a or_o what_o else_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n i_o do_v not_o determine_v but_o this_o we_o all_o know_v that_o fowler_n do_v not_o use_v to_o pursue_v those_o bird_n with_o clamour_n which_o they_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o catch_v his_o manner_n of_o writing_n be_v petulant_a rail_n and_o full_a of_o prevarication_n as_o if_o he_o have_v the_o gift_n to_o turn_v all_o he_o touch_v into_o absurdity_n calumny_n and_o contradiction_n sometime_o in_o a_o good_a mode_n he_o acknowledge_v my_o poor_a labour_n to_o be_v a_o pattern_n of_o wit_n and_o industry_n and_o that_o there_o be_v much_o commendable_a in_o they_o at_o other_o time_n in_o his_o passion_n he_o make_v they_o to_o be_v absurd_a non_fw-fr sensicall_a ridiculous_a and_o every_o where_o contradictory_n to_o themselves_o and_o i_o to_o be_v worse_o than_o a_o madman_n or_o bear_v fool_n good_a word_n if_o better_a be_v within_o better_a will_v come_v out_o sometime_o he_o confess_v i_o to_o be_v candid_a and_o downright_a and_o to_o speak_v plain_a at_o other_o time_n he_o accuse_v i_o for_o a_o falsifier_n and_o a_o cheater_n without_o ingenuity_n a_o sign_n that_o he_o utter_v whatsoever_o come_v upon_o his_o tongue_n end_n without_o regard_n to_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n if_o he_o can_v blow_v both_o hot_a and_o cold_a with_o the_o same_o breath_n there_o be_v no_o great_a regard_n to_o be_v have_v of_o he_o the_o spartan_n bring_v their_o child_n to_o love_v sobriety_n by_o show_v they_o the_o detestable_a enormity_n which_o their_o servant_n commit_v be_v drunken_a
so_o the_o only_a view_n of_o mr._n sergeant_n rail_v write_n be_v a_o sufficient_a antidote_n to_o a_o stay_a man_n against_o such_o extreme_a scurrility_n and_o i_o wonder_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v so_o provident_a that_o none_o of_o her_o son_n in_o their_o write_n swerve_v from_o their_o rule_n of_o faith_n shall_v permit_v they_o so_o licentionsly_n to_o transgress_v the_o rule_n of_o good_a manner_n and_o while_o they_o seem_v to_o propugn_v true_a piety_n to_o abandon_v all_o civility_n as_o if_o zeal_n and_o humanity_n be_v in_o consistent_a when_o michael_n the_o archangel_n dispute_v with_o the_o devil_n about_o the_o body_n of_o moses_n he_o dare_v not_o bring_v a_o rail_a accusation_n against_o he_o whether_o do_v this_o man_n think_v himself_o to_o have_v more_o privilege_n than_o a_o archangel_n or_o we_o to_o be_v worse_o than_o devil_n when_o the_o holy_a ghost_n fall_v upon_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v indeed_o in_o fiery_a tongue_n to_o express_v devotion_n but_o likewise_o in_o cleave_a tongue_n to_o express_v discretion_n st._n paul_n will_v have_v the_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n to_o be_v gentle_a to_o all_o man_n in_o meekness_n instruct_v those_o that_o oppose_v themselves_o if_o god_n peradventure_o will_v give_v they_o repentance_n to_o the_o acknowledge_v of_o the_o truth_n this_o be_v the_o right_a way_n to_o gain_v soul_n 24._o the_o mild_a beam_n of_o the_o sun_n wrought_v more_o effectual_o upon_o the_o traveller_n than_o the_o bluster_a blast_n of_o the_o northwind_n generosus_fw-la est_fw-la animus_n hominis_fw-la the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v generous_a and_o be_v more_o easy_o lead_v then_o draw_v the_o lord_n be_v not_o in_o the_o loud_a wind_n nor_o in_o the_o earthquake_n nor_o in_o the_o fire_n but_o in_o a_o still_a voice_n 12._o such_o a_o one_o master_n sergeant_n be_v not_o if_o he_o have_v object_v but_o two_o or_o three_o absurditye_n or_o contradiction_n it_o have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v trouble_v a_o man_n because_o there_o may_v have_v be_v some_o verisimilitude_n in_o it_o but_o when_o he_o metamorphose_v my_o whole_a discourse_n into_o absurditye_n and_o contradiction_n that_o they_o lie_v as_o thick_a as_o samson_n enemy_n 10._o heap_n upon_o heap_n with_o the_o jawbone_n of_o a_o ass_n it_o show_v plain_o that_o they_o be_v but_o make_v dragon_n without_o any_o reality_n in_o they_o like_o that_o strange_a monster_n which_o a_o cunning_a cheat_n promise_v to_o show_v his_o credulous_a spectator_n a_o horse_n who_o head_n stand_v in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o tail_n and_o when_o all_o come_v to_o all_o he_o himself_o have_v tie_v the_o horse_n to_o the_o manger_n the_o wrong_a way_n there_o need_v no_o application_n so_o a_o expert_a puppet-player_n can_v at_o his_o pleasure_n make_v the_o little_a actor_n chide_v and_o fight_v one_o with_o another_o and_o knock_v their_o own_o head_n against_o the_o post_n by_o secret_a motion_n which_o he_o himself_o dare_v they_o so_o the_o picture_n of_o a_o glorify_a saint_n by_o change_v of_o the_o prospect_n may_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o poor_a lazar._n he_o profess_v that_o he_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o unpraejudiced_a sincerity_n if_o he_o can_v be_v credit_v upon_o his_o bare_a word_n but_o remember_v to_o distrust_v be_v epictetus_n his_o jewel_n no_o man_n proclaim_v in_o the_o street_n that_o he_o have_v rot_a ware_n to_o sell_v and_o juggler_n when_o they_o be_v about_o to_o play_v their_o trick_n use_v to_o strip_v up_o their_o sleeve_n in_o assurance_n of_o fair_a deal_n what_o pledge_v he_o have_v give_v we_o in_o this_o treatise_n of_o such_o candour_n and_o unprejudiced_a sincerity_n we_o may_v observe_v by_o the_o sequel_n in_o sum_n reader_n he_o complain_v much_o of_o wording_n yet_o he_o himself_o have_v nothing_o but_o word_n he_o call_v earnest_o for_o rigid_a demonstration_n but_o produce_v none_o and_o if_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o subject_n will_v bear_v one_o he_o know_v a_o way_n how_o to_o turn_v it_o into_o a_o contradiction_n he_o hate_v contradiction_n with_o all_o his_o heart_n mistake_v he_o not_o it_o be_v in_o another_o not_o in_o himself_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o he_o know_v a_o little_o better_a what_o contradiction_n be_v least_o innocent_a proposition_n go_v to_o wrack_v in_o his_o fury_n under_o the_o notion_n of_o contradiction_n as_o poor_a old_a woman_n do_v for_o witch_n in_o some_o part_n of_o the_o world_n he_o be_v a_o great_a friend_n to_o christian_a peace_n and_o a_o mighty_a desirer_n of_o unity_n if_o we_o may_v trust_v his_o word_n if_o he_o be_v indeed_o it_o will_v be_v the_o better_a for_o he_o one_o day_n but_o who_o will_v have_v think_v it_o that_o scratch_v and_o bite_v among_o reasonable_a man_n be_v a_o ready_a way_n to_o unity_n i_o doubt_v it_o be_v but_o such_o a_o unity_n as_o rabshakeh_n desire_v between_o senacherib_n and_o hezekiah_n a_o slavish_a unity_n i_o propose_v but_o three_o expedient_n in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o my_o vindication_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o obtain_v a_o wish_a peace_n in_o christian_a doom_n such_o as_o themselves_o can_v deny_v to_o be_v lawful_a and_o all_o moderate_a man_n will_v judge_v necessary_a to_o be_v do_v to_o reduce_v the_o present_a papacy_n to_o the_o primitive_a form_n the_o essentials_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o primitive_a creed_n and_o public_a and_o private_a devotion_n to_o the_o primitive_a leiturgy_n but_o this_o peaceable_a man_n be_v so_o far_o from_o listen_v to_o they_o that_o he_o do_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o they_o but_o in_o answer_n wish_v we_o to_o receive_v the_o root_n of_o christianity_n that_o be_v practical_a infallibility_n in_o the_o church_n he_o mean_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v deny_v there_o be_v no_o religion_n leave_v in_o the_o world_n his_o stile_n be_v too-sharp_a his_o judgement_n over_o partial_a his_o experience_n too_o small_a his_o sentence_n and_o censure_n over_o rash_a and_o '_o rigorous_a his_o advises_n too_o magisterial_a to_o be_v a_o fit_a instrument_n of_o procure_a peace_n but_o let_v we_o listen_v to_o those_o truth_n which_o he_o propose_v whether_o they_o be_v as_o he_o avouch_v with_o more_o confidence_n than_o discretion_n as_o evident_a in_o themselves_o as_o that_o two_o and_o three_o make_v five_o if_o he_o can_v make_v this_o good_a his_o work_n be_v do_v but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o thou_o will_v find_v learn_v that_o all_o be_v not_o gold_n that_o glister_v and_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n that_o '_o his_o new_a light_n be_v not_o a_o ignis_fw-la fatuus_fw-la which_o make_v precipice_n seem_v plain_a way_n to_o wandrimg_v mis●ed_v person_n a_o surrejoinder_n or_o defence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o derrys_n reply_v to_o the_o appendix_n of_o mr._n william_n serjeant_n the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o rejoinder_n be_v a_o corollary_n draw_v from_o his_o former_a principle_n bring_v against_o doctor_n hammond_n that_o little_o remain_v to_o be_v reply_v to_o i_o in_o substantial_a point_n since_o neither_o can_v i_o deny_v there_o be_v now_o a_o breach_n make_v between_o we_o nor_o do_v i_o pretend_v demonstrative_a and_o rigorous_a evidence_n that_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v a_o usurpation_n nor_o last_o do_v i_o pretend_v that_o probable_a reason_n be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o renounce_v a_o authority_n so_o strong_o support_v by_o long_a possession_n and_o universal_a delivery_n of_o immediate_a forefather_n as_o come_v from_o christ_n or_o that_o it_o be_v prudence_n to_o hazard_v a_o schism_n upon_o the_o uncertain_a lottery_n of_o a_o probability_n these_o ground_n be_v suppose_v by_o he_o to_o be_v demonstrate_v against_o doctor_n hammond_n and_o be_v bare_o repeat_v here_o to_o try_v if_o he_o can_v kill_v two_o bird_n with_o one_o bolt_n make_v of_o a_o burr_n but_o i_o refuse_v the_o province_n at_o present_a as_o a_o needless_a and_o a_o thankless_a office_n n'eedlesse_a in_o respect_n of_o his_o learned_a adversary_n who_o will_v show_v he_o sufficient_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o pretend_a demonstration_n 543._o and_o thankless_a in_o respect_n of_o himself_o who_o have_v tax_v i_o in_o this_o rejoinder_n of_o busy_v myself_o to_o answer_v a_o objection_n that_o be_v not_o address_v to_o i_o yet_o lest_o mr._n serjeant_n shall_v feign_v that_o i_o seek_v subterfuges_n i_o will_v brief_o and_o clear_o declare_v my_o sense_n of_o his_o ground_n as_o they_o be_v here_o propose_v that_o he_o may_v fight_v no_o more_o with_o his_o own_o shadow_n as_o it_o be_v his_o common_a use_n in_o hope_n i_o may_v recover_v his_o good_a opinion_n of_o my_o candour_n and_o ingenuity_n and_o if_o it_o please_v he_o he_o may_v borrow_v diogenes_n his_o candle_n and_o lantern_n at_o noon_n day_n to_o search_v for_o contradiction_n first_o that_o
there_o be_v a_o breach_n between_o they_o and_o we_o be_v too_o evident_a and_o void_a of_o question_n whether_o they_o or_o we_o be_v guilty_a of_o make_v this_o breach_n they_o by_o excommunicate_v we_o or_o obtrude_a unlawful_a condition_n of_o their_o communion_n upon_o we_o or_o we_o by_o separate_n from_o they_o without_o sufficient_a ground_n be_v a_o question_n between_o we_o but_o that_o which_o change_v the_o whole_a state_n of_o the_o question_n be_v this_o if_o any_o bishop_n or_o church_n or_o court_n whatsoever_o shall_v presume_v to_o change_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n and_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n either_o by_o addition_n or_o by_o substraction_n either_o all_o at_o once_o or_o by_o degree_n and_o in_o so_o do_v shall_v make_v a_o breach_n between_o they_o and_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o between_o they_o and_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n to_o separate_v from_o he_o or_o they_o in_o those_o thing_n wherein_o they_o have_v first_o separate_v from_o the_o ancient_n or_o present_a catholic_n church_n be_v not_o schism_n but_o trûe_a piety_n now_o we_o affirm_v that_o the_o late_a bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v alter_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n and_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n by_o change_v their_o beginning_n of_o unity_n into_o a_o plenitude_n and_o universality_n of_o sovereign_a jurisdiction_n and_o by_o add_v of_o new_a essentials_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o creed_n and_o in_o so_o do_v have_v make_v a_o former_a breach_n between_o themselves_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n here_o the_o hinge_v of_o the_o controversy_n be_v move_v hitherward_o all_o his_o suppose_a demonstration_n o●ght_n to_o have_v look_v neither_o will_v it_o avail_v he_o anything_o to_o say_v there_o can_v be_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o schism_n for_o in_o this_o case_n the_o separation_n be_v not_o schism_n but_o the_o cause_n be_v schism_n second_o if_o by_o demonstrative_a and_o rigorous_a evidence_n he_o understand_v perfect_a demonstration_n according_a to_o the_o exact_a rule_n of_o logic_n neither_o be_v this_o cause_n capable_a of_o such_o demonstration_n nor_o can_v his_o medium_n amount_v unto_o it_o but_o if_o by_o demonstrative_a evidence_n he_o understand_v only_o convince_a proof_n as_o it_o seem_v by_o oppose_v it_o to_o probable_a reason_n i_o have_v make_v it_o evident_a that_o the_o pope_n authority_n which_o he_o do_v sometime_o excercise_n in_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n when_o they_o permit_v he_o and_o which_o he_o will_v have_v exercise_v always_o the_o futuro_fw-la if_o he_o can_v have_v have_v his_o own_o will_n be_v a_o mere_a usurpation_n and_o innovation_n never_o attempt_v in_o the_o british_a church_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n attempt_v but_o not_o admit_v by_o the_o saxon_a church_n for_o the_o next_o five_o hundred_o year_n and_o damn_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o successive_a norman_a king_n ever_o since_o as_o destructive_a to_o the_o right_n of_o the_o english_a crown_n and_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o english_a church_n as_o shall_v be_v mantein_v where_o soever_o occasion_n offer_v itself_o yet_o all_o this_o while_n i_o meddle_v not_o with_o his_o beginning_n of_o unity_n if_o he_o want_v that_o respect_n from_o i_o it_o be_v his_o own_o fault_n and_o this_o include_v a_o answer_n to_o his_o three_o ground_n that_o the_o papal_a authority_n which_o we_o reject_v be_v so_o strong_o support_v by_o long_a possession_n and_o the_o universal_a delivery_n of_o forefather_n as_o come_v from_o christ._n he_o have_v always_o some_o show_n of_o right_n for_o his_o beginning_n of_o unity_n but_o no_o pretence_n in_o the_o world_n for_o his_o sovereignty_n of_o power_n to_o make_v law_n to_o repeal_v law_n to_o dispense_v with_o the_o cannon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o hold_v legantine_n court_n to_o dispose_v of_o ecclesiastical_a preferment_n to_o call_v the_o subjets_fw-fr out_n of_o the_o kingdom_n to_o impose_v tribute_n at_o his_o pleasure_n and_o the_o like_a we_o will_v show_v he_o such_o a_o usurpation_n as_o this_o let_v he_o prove_v such_o a_o papacy_n by_o universal_a tradition_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v great_a apollo_n to_o i_o we_o do_v not_o hold_v it_o prudence_n to_o hazard_v a_o schism_n upon_o probability_n but_o trust_v i_o such_o a_o multitude_n of_o palpable_a usurpation_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o reckon_v up_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o england_n which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o ancient_a privilege_n of_o the_o british_a and_o saxon_a churche●_n together_o with_o the_o addition_n of_o twelve_o new_a article_n or_o essentials_n to_o the_o creed_n at_o once_o by_o pius_n the_o four_o i_o say_v addition_n not_o explication_n be_v more_o than_o probability_n he_o converse_v altogether_o in_o general_n a_o papacy_n or_o no_o papacy_n which_o be_v common_o the_o method_n of_o deceiver_n but_o if_o he_o dispute_v or_o treat_v with_o we_o we_o must_v make_v bold_a to_o draw_v he_o down_o to_o particular_n particular_n do_v make_v the_o breach_n i_o censure_v his_o light_n and_o ludicrous_a title_n of_o down_o derry_o modest_o in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v strange_a if_o he_o shall_v throw_v a_o good_a cast_n who_o sole_n his_o bowl_n upon_o a_o undersong_n allude_v to_o that_o ordinary_a and_o elegant_a expression_n in_o our_o english_a tongue_n sole_a your_o bowl_n well_o that_o be_v be_v careful_a to_o begin_v your_o work_n well_o dimidium_fw-la facti_fw-la qui_fw-la bene_fw-la cepit_fw-la habet_fw-la the_o printer_n put_v seal_n for_o sole_n which_o easy_a error_n of_o the_o press_v any_o rational_a man_n may_v have_v find_v out_o but_o mr._n sergeant_n pen_n run_v at_o random_n tell_v the_o reader_n that_o i_o be_o mystical_o proverbial_a that_o i_o be_o far_o the_o better_a bowler_n sure_o he_o do_v but_o dream_v it_o and_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v so_o inexpert_a as_o not_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v mean_v by_o seal_v a_o bowl_n upon_o a_o undersong_n if_o he_o be_v such_o a_o stranger_n in_o his_o mother_n tongue_n yet_o he_o may_v have_v learn_v of_o some_o of_o his_o friend_n what_o soal_v a_o bowl_n be_v rather_o than_o burden_n the_o press_n and_o trouble_v the_o world_n with_o such_o empty_a and_o impertinent_a vanity_n neither_o do_v his_o pleasant_a humour_n rest_n here_o but_o twice_o more_o in_o his_o short_a rejoinder_n he_o be_v pursue_v this_o innocent_a bowl_n afterward_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o i_o be_v behold_v to_o the_o merry_a stationer_n for_o this_o title_n who_o without_o his_o knowledge_n or_o approbation_n will_v needs_o make_v it_o his_o post-past_a to_o his_o bill_n of_o fare_n this_o answer_n if_o it_o be_v true_a have_v excuse_v himself_o but_o it_o show_v that_o the_o stationer_n be_v over_o scurrilouf_o audacious_a to_o make_v such_o antepast_n and_o postpast_n at_o his_o pleasure_n neither_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o the_o composer_n be_v such_o a_o perfect_a stranger_n to_o our_o langnage_n as_o he_o intimate_v in_o his_o epistle_n and_o the_o merry_a stationer_n so_o well_o verse_v in_o our_o vndersong_n but_o after_o all_o this_o he_o ow_v it_o by_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o jest_n be_v very_o proper_a and_o fatal_a yes_o as_o fatal_a as_o it_o be_v for_o his_o rejoinder_n to_o contain_v 666_o page_n which_o be_v just_a the_o number_n of_o the_o beast_n his_o merry_a stationer_n may_v easy_o have_v contrive_v it_o otherwise_o for_o fear_v of_o a_o fatality_n by_o make_v one_o page_n more_o or_o less_o but_o his_o mind_n be_v otherwise_o take_v up_o how_o to_o cheat_v his_o customer_n with_o counterfeit_a bill_n of_o fare_n which_o they_o will_v never_o find_v i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o cure_v he_o of_o his_o opinion_n of_o fatality_n sect_n i._o cap_n i._n because_o mr._n serjeant_n complain_v much_o of_o word_v and_o yet_o give_v his_o reader_n nothing_o but_o word_n and_o call_v so_o often_o for_o rigorous_a demonstration_n yet_o produce_v nothing_o for_o his_o part_n which_o resemble_v a_o strict_a demonstration_n and_o because_o this_o first_o part_n of_o his_o discourse_n be_v the_o basis_n or_o ground_n work_n of_o the_o whole_a building_n whereof_o he_o boast_v that_o it_o do_v charge_v the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n upon_o our_o church_n not_o only_o with_o colour_n but_o with_o undeniable_a evidence_n i_o will_v reduce_v his_o discourse_n into_o a_o logical_a form_n that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v clear_o where_o the_o water_n stick_v between_o we_o whatsoever_o he_o prate_v of_o a_o rigorous_a demonstrative_a way_n as_o be_v only_o conclusive_a it_o be_v but_o a_o copy_n of_o his_o countenance_n he_o can_v be_v ignorant_a or_o if_o he_o be_v he_o will_v find_v by_o experience_n that_o his_o glitter_a principle_n will_v fail_v he_o in_o his_o great_a need_n and_o leave_v he_o in_o the_o dirt_n i_o have_v know_v sundry_a
fantastic_a person_n who_o have_v be_v great_a pretender_n to_o demonstration_n but_o always_o successless_a and_o for_o the_o most_o part_n ridiculous_a they_o be_v so_o conceited_o curious_a about_o the_o premise_n that_o common_o they_o quite_o mistake_v their_o conclusion_n cause_n encumber_v with_o circumstance_n and_o those_o leave_v to_o the_o election_n of_o free_a agent_n be_v not_o very_o capable_a of_o demonstration_n the_o case_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o be_v this_o as_o it_o be_v state_v by_o i_o 306._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v withdraw_v themselves_o from_o obedience_n to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o upon_o those_o term_n it_o be_v undertake_v by_o he_o in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v and_o that_o this_o crime_n be_v just_o charge_v upon_o his_o church_n not_o only_o with_o colour_n but_o with_o undeniable_a evidence_n of_o fact_n will_v appear_v by_o the_o position_n of_o the_o case_n and_o the_o nature_n of_o his_o exception_n we_o have_v the_o state_n of_o the_o controversy_n agree_v upon_o between_o we_o now_o let_v we_o see_v how_o he_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v his_o intention_n what_o church_n soever_o do_v upon_o probable_a reason_n without_o any_o neeessary_a or_o convince_a ground_n break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o agree_v upon_o by_o all_o true_a church_n be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eight●s_a day_n do_v upon_o probable_a reason_n without_o any_o necessary_a or_o convince_a ground_n break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o agree_v upon_o by_o all_o true_a church_n therefore_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n i_o do_v ready_o assent_v to_o his_o major_a proposition_n and_o be_o ready_a to_o grant_v he_o more_o if_o he_o have_v please_v to_o insert_v it_o that_o that_o church_n be_v schismatical_a which_o do_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o gospel_n whatsoever_o their_o reason_n be_v whether_o convince_a or_o probable_a and_o whosoever_o do_v either_o consent_n to_o they_o or_o dissent_v from_o they_o but_o i_o deny_v his_o minor_n which_o he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v thus_o whatsoever_o church_n do_v renounce_v or_o reject_v these_o two_o follow_a rule_n or_o principle_n first_o that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v inherit_v from_o their_o forefather_n as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v sole_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v for_o obligatory_a and_o nothing_o in_o they_o to_o be_v change_v second_o that_o christ_n have_v make_v st._n peter_n first_o or_o chief_a or_o prince_n of_o his_o apostle_n who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o first_o mover_n under_o he_o in_o the_o church_n after_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o this_o world_n and_o to_o who_o all_o other_o in_o difficulty_n concern_v matter_n belong_v to_o universal_a faith_n or_o government_n shall_v have_v recourse_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o successor_n from_o st._n peter_n inherit_v from_o he_o this_o privilege_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o successor_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o church_n do_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o unity_n ordain_v by_o christ_n in_o his_o gospel_n and_o agree_v upon_o between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o communion_n but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v all_o this_o in_o henry_n the_o eyghts_n day_n that_o very_a year_n where_o in_o this_o unhappy_a separation_n begin_v upon_o mere_o probable_a no_o convince_a ground_n therefore_o etc._n etc._n to_o his_o former_a proposition_n i_o make_v this_o exception_n that_o he_o will_v obtrude_v upon_o we_o she_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o its_o dependent_n for_o the_o catholic_n church_n upon_o this_o he_o fly_v out_o as_o it_o be_v his_o custom_n into_o a_o invective_n discourse_n tell_v i_o i_o look_v a_o squint_a at_o his_o position_n of_o the_o case_n he_o will_v not_o find_v it_o so_o in_o the_o conclusion_n and_o that_o i_o strive_v hocuspocus_a like_o to_o divert_v my_o spectator_n eye_n with_o a_o great_a deal_n more_o of_o such_o like_a froth_n where_o in_o there_o be_v not_o a_o syllable_n to_o the_o purpose_n except_o this_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mention_v the_o word_n catholic_n in_o that_o place_n the_o great_a be_v his_o fault_n it_o be_v a_o foul_a solecism_n in_o logic_n not_o to_o conclude_v contradictory_o i_o do_v mention_v the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o church_n of_o england_n have_v separate_v itself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o he_o have_v undertake_v in_o the_o word_n immediate_o follow_v to_o charge_v that_o very_a schism_n upon_o we_o with_o undeniable_a evidence_n and_o in_o his_o very_a first_o essay_n shuffle_n out_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o the_o place_n thereof_o thrust_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o communion_n he_o may_v have_v know_v that_o we_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o communion_n as_o the_o catholic_n church_n nor_o as_o above_o a_o five_o part_n of_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n and_o that_o we_o do_v not_o ascribe_v any_o such_o in_o fallibility_n in_o necessary_a truth_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n with_o all_o her_o dependent_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n nor_o esteem_v it_o always_o schismatical_a to_o separate_v from_o the_o modern_a roman_a church_n namely_o in_o those_o point_n wherein_o she_o have_v first_o separate_v both_o from_o the_o primitive_a roman_a church_n and_o from_o the_o present_a catholic_n church_n but_o we_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v always_o schismatical_a to_o separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n unite_v thus_o much_o he_o ought_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o when_o he_o have_v oecasion_n hereafter_o to_o write_v upon_o this_o subject_a not_o to_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v as_o they_o use_v to_o do_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v convertible_a term_n or_o tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n what_o their_o tenet_n be_v that_o these_o church_n which_o continue_v in_o communnion_n with_o the_o roman_a be_v the_o only_a true_a church_n we_o regard_v not_o their_o schismatical_a and_o uncharitable_a tenet_n now_o no_o more_o than_o we_o regard_v the_o same_o tenet_n of_o the_o donatist_n of_o old_a they_o must_v produce_v better_a authority_n than_o their_o own_o and_o more_o substantial_a proof_n than_o he_o have_v any_o in_o his_o budget_n to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o catholic_n church_n it_o be_v charity_n to_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_n church_n inclusive_o but_o the_o great_a uncharitableness_n in_o the_o world_n to_o make_v it_o the_o catholic_n church_n exclusive_o that_o be_v to_o separate_v from_o christ_n and_o from_o hope_n of_o salvation_n as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v all_o christian_n who_o be_v not_o of_o their_o own_o communion_n howsoever_o it_o be_v well_o that_o they_o who_o use_v to_o vaunt_v that_o the_o enemy_n tremble_v at_o the_o name_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v now_o come_v about_o themselves_o to_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v a_o appendix_n to_o the_o roman_a take_v notice_n reader_n that_o this_o be_v the_o first_o time_n that_o mr._n serjeant_n turn_v his_o back_n to_o the_o question_n but_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o last_o my_o next_o ta●ke_n be_v to_o examine_v his_o two_o rule_n or_o bond_n of_o unity_n faith_n and_o first_o concern_v his_o rule_n of_o faith_n i_o do_v not_o only_o approve_v it_o but_o thank_v he_o for_o it_o and_o when_o i_o have_v a_o purpose_n to_o confute_v the_o 12_o new_a article_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o i_o will_v not_o desire_v a_o better_a medium_n than_o it_o and_o i_o do_v cordial_o subscribe_v to_o his_o censure_n that_o the_o transgressor_n there_o of_o be_v indeed_o those_o who_o be_v true_o guilty_a of_o that_o horrid_a schism_n which_o be_v now_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n to_o his_o second_o rule_n or_o principle_n for_o government_n that_o christ_n make_v s●_n peter_z first_o or_o chief_a or_o prince_n of_o his_o apostle_n peter_n who_o be_v to_o be_v the_o first_o mover_n under_o he_o in_o the_o church_n after_o he_o depart_v out_o of_o this_o world_n to_o who_o all_o other_o shall_v have_v recourse_n in_o great_a difficulty_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v a_o mere_a novice_n and_o altogether_o ignorant_a of_o the_o tenet_n of_o our_o english_a church_n he_o may_v have_v know_v that_o we_o have_v no_o controversy_n
legate_n do_v oppose_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n 16._o gloriosissimi_fw-la judices_fw-la dixerunt_fw-la the_o most_o glorious_a judge_n say_v let_v both_o party_n plead_v the_o canon_n by_o the_o canon_n that_o great_a council_n of_o six_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o father_n do_v examine_v it_o by_o the_o canon_n they_o do_v determine_v it_o there_o be_v no_o inheritance_n pretend_v in_o the_o case_n second_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v hold_v all_o his_o privilege_n by_o inheritance_n from_o s._n peter_n how_o much_o be_v three_o successive_a pope_n over_o see_v zosimus_n bonifacius_n and_o caelestinus_n to_o ground_v they_o upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o these_o either_o counterfeit_a or_o mistake_v for_o the_o canon_n of_o sardica_n which_o when_o the_o african_a father_n do_v find_v o●t_o by_o the_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n they_o reject_v that_o part_n of_o papal_a power_n as_o appear_v by_o their_o letter_n to_o pope_n celestine_n we_o earnest_o beseech_v you_o that_o hence_o forward_o you_o do_v not_o easy_o lend_v a_o ear_n to_o such_o as_o come_v from_o hence_o nor_o which_o bellarmine_n cut_v of_o guileful_o receive_v any_o more_o such_o as_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o we_o into_o your_o communion_n caelestin_a with_o this_o sharp_a intimation_n ne_o fumosum_fw-la typum_fw-la saeculi_fw-la in_o ecclesiam_fw-la videamur_fw-la inducere_fw-la if_o sovereign_a judicature_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o inheritance_n from_o st._n peter_n why_o do_v three_o pope_n challenge_n it_o upon_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicene_n concell_n and_o why_o do_v the_o african_a father_n refuse_v to_o admit_v it_o because_o it_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n three_o if_o by_o prince_n of_o bishop_n mr_n serjeant_n understand_v a_o absolute_a prince_n one_o who_o have_v a_o single_a legislative_a power_n to_o make_v canon_n to_o abolish_v canon_n to_o dispense_v with_o canon_n as_o seem_v good_a in_o his_o own_o eye_n if_o he_o makea_fw-mi great_a prince_n of_o the_o steward_n than_o he_o do_v of_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n he_o will_v have_v a_o hard_a province_n to_o secure_v himself_o from_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n in_o the_o former_a of_o which_o be_v personal_o present_v one_o empereur_n two_o pope_n two_o patriarch_n all_o the_o cardinal_n the_o ambassador_n of_o all_o the_o prince_n in_o the_o west_n and_o the_o flower_n of_o occidental_a scholar_n divine_n and_o lawyer_n these_o have_v reason_n to_o know_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o well_o as_o mr._n serjeant_n last_o before_o he_o can_v determine_v this_o to_o be_v a_o undeniable_a truth_n and_o a_o necessary_a bond_n of_o unity_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v inheri●er_n of_o all_o the_o privilege_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o that_o this_o principle_n be_v christ_n own_o ordination_n record_v in_o scripture_n he_o must_v first_o reconcile_v himself_o to_o his_o own_o party_n there_o be_v a_o commentary_n upon_o the_o synodall_n answer_n of_o the_o council_n of_o basile_n print_v at_o colone_n in_o the_o year_n 1613._o b._n wherein_o be_v maintain_v 40._o that_o the_o province_n subject_a to_o the_o four_o great_a patriarch_n from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n do_v know_v no_o other_o supreme_a but_o their_o own_o patriarch_n and_o if_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o primate_n it_o be_v by_o the_o church_n if_o he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n it_o be_v by_o the_o church_n and_o where_o as_o we_o have_v say_v that_o it_o be_v express_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o many_o province_n be_v subject_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o ecclesiastical_a custom_n and_o no_o other_o right_n the_o synod_n shall_v do_v the_o great_a injury_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n if_o it_o shall_v attribute_v those_o thing_n to_o he_o only_o from_o custom_n which_o be_v his_o due_n by_o divine_a right_n gerson_n go_v much_o more_o accurate_o to_o work_v animae_fw-la distinguish_v papal_a right_n into_o three_o sort_n divine_a which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n challenge_v by_o succession_n from_o st._n peter_n canonical_a wherewith_o he_o have_v be_v trust_v by_o general_a counsel_n and_o civil_a grant_v to_o that_o see_v by_o the_o emperor_n of_o the_o first_o sort_n he_o reckon_v no_o more_o but_o three_o privilege_n to_o call_v counsel_n to_o give_v sentencee_n with_o counsel_n and_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a among_o the_o proposition_n give_v in_o to_o the_o council_n of_o pisa_n and_o print_v with_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n 69._o we_o find_v these_o first_o although_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n may_v after_o a_o certain_a manner_n be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o depend_v necessary_o or_o receive_v its_o beginning_n from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o pope_n second_o the_o church_n have_v power_n and_o authority_n original_o and_o immediate_o from_o christ_n its_o head_n to_o congregate_v itself_o in_o a_o gonerall_n council_n to_o preserve_v its_o unity_n it_o be_v add_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n have_v this_o power_n also_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n three_o in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o read_v of_o four_o counsel_n convocate_v and_o not_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o peter_n but_o by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o one_o council_n celebrate_v at_o jerusalem_n we_o read_v not_o that_o peter_n but_o that_o james_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n be_v precedent_n and_o give_v sentence_n he_o conclude_v that_o the_o church_n may_v call_v a_o general_n council_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o in_o some_o case_n though_o he_o contradict_v it_o the_o writer_n and_o write_n of_o those_o time_n in_o and_o about_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n and_o the_o two_o pisan_a counsel_n pont._n do_v a_o bind_v with_o such_o expression_n before_o he_o determine_v positive_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o the_o papacy_n as_o it_o include_v a_o sovereignty_n of_o power_n he_o ought_v to_o consider_v serious_o what_o many_o of_o his_o own_o friend_n have_v write_v about_o it_o as_o canus_n and_o cusanus_fw-la and_o stapleton_n and_o soto_n and_o driedo_n and_o segovius_n as_o it_o be_v relate_v by_o aeneas_n silvius_n and_o other_o that_o the_o pope_n succession_n be_v not_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n that_o christ_n do_v not_o limit_v the_o primacy_n to_o any_o particular_a church_n that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v perpetual_a prince_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o gloss_n which_o prefer_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n before_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o world_n singular_a and_o foolish_a and_o unworthy_a to_o be_v follow_v that_o it_o have_v be_v a_o catholic_n tenet_n in_o former_a time_n that_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v depend_v not_o upon_o divine_a but_o human_a right_n and_o the_o positive_a decree_n of_o the_o church_n that_o man_n famous_a in_o the_o study_n of_o christian_a theology_n li_z have_v not_o be_v afraid_a in_o great_a assembly_n to_o assert_v the_o humane_a right_n of_o the_o pope_n he_o ought_v to_o consider_v what_o be_v say_v of_o a_o great_a king_n that_o theologian_n affirm_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n by_o divine_a right_n 9_o but_o when_o the_o king_n require_v they_o to_o prove_v it_o they_o can_v not_o demonstrate_v it_o and_o last_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v late_o to_o we_o it_o suffice_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v st._n peter_n successor_n 5._o and_o this_o all_o father_n testify_v and_o all_o ihe_n catholic_n church_n believe_v but_o whether_o he_o be_v so_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la or_o humano_fw-la be_v no_o point_n of_o faith_n here_o reader_n i_o must_v entreat_v the_o before_o we_o proceed_v a_o step-farth_a to_o read_v his_o assertion_n 304._o that_o the_o constant_a belief_n of_o the_o catholic_n world_n be_v and_o be_v that_o this_o principle_n namely_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n inherit_v the_o privilege_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v christ_n own_o ordination_n record_v in_o scripture_n derive_v to_o we_o by_o the_o strong_a evidence_n that_o our_o nature_n be_v capable_a of_o what_o a_o strange_a confidenee_n be_v this_o to_o tell_v his_o reader_n he_o care_v not_o what_o so_o it_o may_v serve_v his_o present_a turn_n how_o shall_v this_o be_v record_v in_o scripture_n when_o the_o bisshoprick_n of_o rome_n be_v never_o mention_v in_o scripture_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o whether_o st._n peter_n ever_o be_v at_o rome_n except_o we_o understand_v rome_n by_o babylon_n but_o this_o be_v too_o remote_a and_o too_o obscure_a to_o
be_v christ_n own_o ordinance_n if_o it_o be_v record_v in_o scripture_n it_o be_v either_o in_o nicodemus_n his_o gospel_n or_o in_o the_o pope_n decretal_a epistle_n certain_o in_o the_o genuine_a scripture_n there_o be_v no_o manner_n of_o mention_n of_o any_o such_o thing_n hear_v the_o ingenuons_a confession_n of_o a_o more_o learned_a adversary_n 4._o neque_fw-la scriptura_fw-la neque_fw-la traditio_fw-la habet_fw-la sedem_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la it_o a_o fixam_fw-la esse_fw-la romae_fw-la ut_fw-la inde_fw-la auferri_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la there_o be_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o trrdition_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o see_v of_o st._n peter_n be_v so_o fix_v to_o rome_n that_o it_o can_v be_v take_v from_o it_o but_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v in_o herit_v the_o privilege_n of_o st._n peter_n by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n record_v in_o scripture_n than_o there_o be_v scripture_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o can_v be_v take_v away_o from_o rome_n christ_n own_o ordination_n must_v not_o be_v violate_v behold_v both_o his_o ground_n scripture_n and_o tradition_n sweep_v away_o at_o once_o it_o will_v not_o serve_v his_o turn_n at_o all_o to_o say_v 504._o that_o i_o take_v he_o in_o a_o reduplicative_a sense_n as_o if_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 504._o as_o of_o rome_n either_o christ_n ordain_v in_o scripture_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v succeed_v st._n peter_n in_o his_o privilege_n and_o then_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v succeed_v st._n peter_n as_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o christ_n have_v not_o ordain_v in_o scripture_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v succeed_v s._n peter_n in_o his_o privilege_n and_o then_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o st._n peter_n successor_n by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n he_o may_v be_v his_o successor_n upon_o another_o account_n but_o by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n record_v in_o scripture_n he_o can_v be_v if_o christ_n himself_o have_v not_o ordain_v in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v he_o add_v that_o i_o pick_v these_o word_n out_o of_o a_o paragraph_n a_o leaf_n after_o why_o be_v he_o not_o bind_v to_o speak_v truth_n in_o one_o paragraph_n as_o well_o as_o in_o another_o or_o will_v he_o oblige_v one_o who_o combat_v with_o he_o to_o watch_v where_o his_o buckler_n be_v ready_a and_o be_v sure_a to_o hit_v that_o these_o thing_n be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n and_o yet_o he_o vapour_n about_o my_o frivolous_a and_o impertinent_a answer_n and_o wonder_n how_o any_o man_n can_v have_v the_o patience_n to_o read_v such_o a_o trisler_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_v which_o scale_n have_v more_o weight_n in_o it_o how_o shall_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succession_n to_o s._n peter_n be_v christ_n own_o ordination_n record_v in_o scripture_n when_o both_o his_o fellow_n and_o he_o himself_o do_v ground_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n right_n to_o succeed_v st._n peter_n upon_o the_o fact_n of_o st._n peter_n namely_o his_o die_a bishop_n of_o rome_n 4._o bellarmine_n distinguish_v between_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succession_n of_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o succession_n the_o succession_n say_v he_o be_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o command_v by_o christ_n but_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o succession_n be_v from_o the_o fact_n of_o s._n peter_n not_o from_o the_o institution_n of_o christ._n which_o two_o be_v irreconciliable_a for_o if_o christ_n command_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v succeed_v st._n peter_n as_o he_o say_v deus_fw-la ipse_fw-la jussit_fw-la romae_fw-la figi_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la petri_n sedem_fw-la quae_fw-la autem_fw-la jubet_fw-la deus_fw-la mutari_fw-la ab_fw-la hominibus_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la then_o not_o the_o fact_n of_o st._n peter_n but_o the_o mandate_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o reason_n of_o the_o succession_n there_o be_v no_o need_n that_o st._n peter_n shall_v do_v any_o thing_n to_o perfect_v the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n and_o on_o the_o otherside_n if_o the_o fact_n of_o st._n peter_n be_v the_o true_a reason_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n succession_n they_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o christ_n do_v not_o command_v it_o let_v it_o be_v suppose_v to_o avoid_v impertinent_a dispute_n that_o christ_n do_v create_v a_o chief_a pastor_n of_o his_o church_n as_o a_o office_n of_o perpetual_a necessity_n without_o declare_v his_o pleasure_n who_o shall_v be_v his_o successor_n but_o leave_v the_o choice_n either_o to_o the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o to_o the_o church_n without_o peradventure_o in_o such_o a_o case_n the_o office_n be_v from_o christ_n and_o the_o perpetuity_n be_v from_o christ_n but_o the_o right_n of_o the_o successor_n be_v from_o they_o who_o make_v the_o application_n whether_o if_o be_v the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o the_o church_n the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o record_v in_o scripture_n the_o fact_n of_o s._n peter_n be_v not_o record_v in_o scripture_n no_o such_o ordination_n of_o christ_n be_v record_v in_o scripture_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v s._n peter_n successor_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o s._n peter_n shall_v be_v christ_n own_o ordination_n record_v in_o scripture_n then_o what_o be_v this_o mandate_n of_o christ_n and_o where_o contain_v the_o mandate_n be_v a_o old_a legend_n contain_v in_o marcellinus_n leo_n athanasius_n ambrose_n and_o gregory_n some_o of_o which_o point_n at_o it_o other_o relate_v it_o some_o define_v it_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o s._n peter_n a_o little_a before_o his_o passion_n be_v ready_a to_o depart_v out_o of_o rome_n do_v meet_v christ_n in_o the_o gate_n who_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o come_v to_o rome_n to_o be_v crucify_a again_o thereby_o intimate_v that_o st._n peter_n must_v suffer_v martyrdom_n there_o here_o be_v no_o mandate_n of_o christ_n to_o s._n peter_n to_o fix_v his_o see_n at_o rome_n much_o less_o that_o he_o shall_v place_v it_o there_o for_o ever_o never_o to_o be_v remove_v true_o say_v bellarmine_n but_o yet_o non_fw-la est_fw-la improbabile_fw-la dominum_fw-la etiam_fw-la aperte_fw-la jussisse_fw-la ut_fw-la sedem_fw-la svam_fw-la petrus_n it_o a_o figeret_fw-la romae_fw-la ut_fw-la romanus_n episcopus_fw-la absolute_a ei_fw-la succederet_fw-la it_o be_v not_o improbable_a that_o the_o lord_n do_v command_v plain_o that_o peter_n shall_v fix_v his_o see_n at_o rome_n that_o the_o roman_a bishop_n shall_v succeed_v he_o absolute_o alas_o this_o be_v but_o a_o poor_a ground_n to_o build_v a_o man_n faith_n upon_o that_o it_o be_v not_o improbable_a and_o therefore_o the_o say_a author_n proceed_v tame●si_fw-fr forte_fw-fr etc._n etc._n although_o peradventure_o it_o be_v not_o of_o divine_a right_n that_o the_o romaen_n bishop_n because_o he_o be_v the_o roman_a bishop_n do_v succeed_v s._n peter_n in_o the_o prefecture_n of_o the_o church_n and_o though_o it_o be_v suppose_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v s._n peter_n successor_n yet_o it_o can_v be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o pope_n vrban_n or_o pope_n clement_n be_v s._n peter_n successor_n and_o true_a bishop_n of_o rome_n because_o there_o can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o moral_a certainty_n for_o it_o who_o can_v assure_v we_o of_o their_o right_a baptism_n and_o right_a ordination_n according_a to_o the_o common_a roman_a ground_n how_o can_v we_o be_v sure_a of_o their_o canonical_a election_n that_o two_o three_o part_n of_o the_o cardinal_n do_v concur_v or_o that_o the_o election_n by_o cardinal_n now_o and_o by_o the_o emperor_n and_o by_o the_o people_n former_o be_v all_o authentic_a form_n though_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o any_o of_o these_o may_v serve_v to_o obtain_v a_o humane_a right_n but_o especial_o what_o can_v secure_v we_o from_o the_o ●aint_n of_o simoniacal_a pravity_n which_o they_o who_o know_v the_o intrigue_n of_o state_n do_v tell_v we_o have_v bear_v too_o great_a vogue_n in_o the_o conclave_n of_o late_a day_n and_o if_o it_o can_v be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v the_o present_a pope_n be_v st._n peter_n successor_n for_o these_o reason_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n that_o any_o of_o they_o all_o have_v be_v his_o successor_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n i_o do_v not_o urge_v these_o thing_n to_o encourage_v any_o man_n to_o withdraw_v obedience_n from_o a_o lawful_a superior_a either_o upon_o improbable_a or_o probable_a supposition_n but_o to_o show_v their_o temerarious_a presumption_n who_o do_v so_o easy_o change_v humane_a right_n into_o divine_a right_n and_o make_v many_o thing_n to_o be_v necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n for_o which_o there_o never_o be_v revelation_n or_o more_o than_o moral_a certainty_n s_n i._o cap._n ii_o the_o next_o
erroneous_a tenet_n as_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o schismatical_a practice_n mere_o by_o the_o authority_n and_o to_o uphold_v the_o interest_n and_o ambition_n or_o avaricious_a course_n of_o the_o roman_a court._n my_o second_o ground_n be_v this_o god_n almighty_a do_v not_o approve_v of_o that_o unequal_a proverb_n the_o father_n have_v eat_v sour_a grape_n and_o the_o child_n tooth_n be_v set_v on_o edge_n posterity_n be_v not_o guilty_a of_o their_o ancestor_n transgression_n predecessor_n further_o than_o they_o do_v either_o imitate_v they_o or_o maintain_v they_o suppose_v these_o calumny_n have_v be_v truth_n which_o some_o have_v belch_v forth_o against_o our_o reformer_n that_o they_o have_v sacrilegious_a or_o other_o sinister_a end_n it_o signify_v nothing_o to_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o neither_o justify_v they_o nor_o imitate_v they_o jehues_n heart_n be_v not_o over_o upright_o and_o yet_o god_n himself_o approve_v his_o reformation_n suppose_v any_o of_o our_o reformer_n have_v run_v into_o any_o excess_n or_o extreme_n either_o in_o their_o expression_n or_o perhaps_o in_o their_o action_n it_o be_v a_o difficult_a thing_n in_o great_a change_n to_o observe_v a_o just_a mean_a it_o may_v be_v out_o of_o humane_a frailty_n as_o lycurgus_n out_o of_o hatred_n to_o drunkenness_n cut_v down_o all_o the_o vine_n about_o sparia_n or_o it_o may_v be_v out_o of_o policy_n as_o man_n use_v to_o bend_v a_o crooked_a rod_n as_o much_o the_o contrary_a way_n to_o make_v it_o straight_o or_o as_o expert_a master_n in_o music_n do_v sometime_o draw_v up_o their_o scholar_n a_o note_n too_o high_a to_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o just_a tone_n what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o so_o long_o as_o we_o practise_v the_o mean_a and_o maintain_v the_o mean_a and_o guide_v ourselves_o by_o the_o certain_a line_n and_o level_n of_o apostolical_a and_o primitive_a tradition_n charity_n command_v we_o to_o think_v well_o of_o our_o predecessor_n and_o theology_n to_o look_v well_o to_o ourselves_o three_o that_o difference_n which_o divine_n do_v make_v between_o affirmative_a and_o negative_a precept_n affirmative_a that_o affirmative_a bind_v always_o but_o not_o to_o all_o time_n semper_fw-la but_o not_o ad_fw-la semper_fw-la a_o man_n be_v bind_v always_o to_o pray_v but_o be_v not_o hound_n to_o the_o actual_a exercise_n of_o prayer_n at_o all_o timt_n but_o neganegative_a precept_n bind_v both_o semper_fw-la and_o ad_fw-la semper_fw-la the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o affirmative_a and_o negative_a precedent_n affirmative_a precedent_n prove_v always_o that_o such_o a_o fact_n be_v do_v and_o it_o may_v be_v that_o it_o be_v just_o do_v at_o that_o time_n in_o that_o case_n but_o they_o prove_v not_o a_o right_a ad_fw-la semper_fw-la to_o do_v it_o at_o all_o time_n the_o reason_n be_v evident_a particular_a act_n may_v be_v do_v by_o connivance_n or_o by_o special_a licence_n but_o a_o general_n prohibition_n imply_v a_o perpetual_a right_n as_o for_o instance_n i_o produce_v negative_a precedent_n both_o general_n law_n against_o all_o appeal_n to_o rome_n that_o no_o man_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n without_o the_o king_n licence_n and_o particular_a prohibition_n out_o of_o the_o king_n court_n by_o form_n of_o ordinary_a justice_n against_o such_o and_o such_o appeal_v or_o such_o and_o such_o sentence_n upon_o appeal_v this_o argue_v a_o perpetual_a right_o to_o forbid_v appeal_v whensoever_o it_o be_v judge_v expedient_a on_o the_o otherside_n he_o preduce_v precedent_n of_o particular_a appeal_v to_o rome_n which_o he_o may_v do_v of_o late_a day_n but_o for_o the_o first_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n it_o be_v not_o so_o this_o prove_v only_o the_o king_n licence_n or_o connivance_n in_o such_o case_n affirmative_a it_o do_v not_o prove_v a_o perpetual_a right_n because_o two_o perpetual_a right_n contradictory_n one_o to_o another_o can_v not_o be_v my_o four_o and_o last_o ground_n be_v that_o neither_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o nor_o any_o of_o our_o legislator_n do_v ever_o endeavour_v to_o deprive_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o any_o part_n thereof_o either_o the_o key_n order_n or_o the_o key_n of_o jurisdiction_n i_o mean_v jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a which_o have_v place_n only_o in_o the_o inner_a court_n of_o conscience_n and_o over_o such_o person_n as_o submit_v willing_o nor_o do_v ever_o challenge_v or_o endeavour_v to_o assume_v unto_o themselves_o either_o the_o key_n of_o order_n or_o the_o key_n of_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a all_o which_o they_o deprive_v the_o pope_n of_o all_o which_o they_o assume_v to_o themselves_o be_v the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o coactive_a power_n to_o be_v exercise_v by_o person_n capable_a of_o the_o respective_a branch_n of_o it_o this_o power_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n never_o have_v ot_fw-mi can_v have_v just_o over_o their_o subject_n but_o under_o they_o who_o subject_n they_o be_v and_o there_o fore_o when_o we_o meet_v with_o these_o word_n or_o the_o like_a that_o no_o foreign_a prelate_n shall_v exercise_v any_o manner_n of_o power_n jurisdiction_n superiority_n pre-eminence_n or_o privilege_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a within_o this_o realm_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o internal_a or_o pure_o spiritual_a power_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n or_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n we_o see_v the_o contrary_a practise_v every_o day_n but_o of_o external_a and_o coactive_a power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o foro_fw-la conten●ioso_fw-la and_o that_o it_o be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v so_o understand_v i_o prove_v clear_o by_o a_o proviso_n in_o one_o main_a act_n of_o parliament_n and_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o english_a church_n first_o the_o proviso_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o act_n for_o the_o exoneration_n of_o the_o king_n subject_n from_o all_o exaction_n and_o imposition_n pay_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 12._o provide_v always_o this_o act_n nor_o any_o thing_n therein_o contain_v shall_v be_v here_o after_o interpret_v or_o expound_v that_o your_o grace_n your_o noble_n and_o subject_n intend_v by_o the_o same_o to_o decline_v and_o vary_v from_o the_o congregation_n of_o christ_n church_n in_o any_o thing_n concern_v the_o very_a article_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n of_o christendom_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n declare_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n necessary_a for_o your_o and_o their_o salvation_n but_o only_o to_o make_v a_o ordinance_n by_o policy_n necessary_a and_o convenient_a to_o repress_v vice_n and_o for_o good_a conservation_n of_o this_o realm_n in_o peace_n unity_n and_o tranquillity_n from_o ravine_n and_o spoil_n insue_v much_o the_o old_a ancient_a custom_n of_o this_o realm_n in_o that_o behalf_n they_o profess_v their_o ordinance_n be_v mere_o political_a what_o have_v a_o political_a ordinance_n to_o do_v with_o power_n pure_o spiritual_a they_o seek_v only_o to_o preserve_v the_o kingdom_n from_o ravine_n and_o spoil_v power_n pure_o spiritual_a can_v commit_v no_o ravine_n or_o spoil_v ●he●_n follow_v ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o realm_n there_o be_v no_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o realm_n for_o abolition_n or_o translation_n of_o power_n pure_o spiritual_a they_o profess_v all_o conformity_n to_o holy_a scripture_n but_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n be_v evident_o give_v by_o christ_n in_o scripture_n to_o his_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n not_o to_o sovereign_a prince_n if_o any_o thing_n have_v be_v contain_v in_o this_o law_n for_o the_o abolition_n or_o translation_n of_o power_n mere_o and_o pure_o spiritual_a it_o have_v be_v retract_v by_o this_o proviso_n at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o be_v enact_v the_o canon_n be_v the_o 37._o canon_n where_o we_o give_v the_o king_n majesty_n the_o supreme_a government_n we_o do_v not_o give_v our_o king_n either_o the_o administration_n of_o god_n word_n or_o sacrament_n which_o the_o injunction_n publish_v late_o by_o queen_n elisabeth_n do_v most_o evident_o declare_v but_o only_o that_o prerogative_n which_o we_o see_v to_o have_v be_v always_o attribute_v to_o all_o godly_a prince_n by_o himself_o in_o holy_a scripture_n that_o be_v to_o preserve_v or_o contain_v all_o estate_n and_o order_n commit_v to_o their_o trust_n by_o god_n whether_o they_o be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a in_o their_o duty_n and_o restrein_o contumacious_a offender_n with_o the_o civil_a sword_n you_o see_v the_o power_n be_v political_a the_o sword_n be_v political_a all_o be_v political_a our_o king_n leave_v the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a to_o those_o to_o who_o christ_n have_v lest_o it_o sect._n i._n cap._n iu._n and_o now_o have_v dispatch_v the_o circumstance_n out_o of_o my_o way_n we_o and_o lay_v down_o some_o necessary_a ground_n i_o come_v direct_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o assumption_n and_o
to_o ruin_v etc._n etc._n and_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o my_o clergy_n and_o prince_n we_o have_v ordain_v bishop_n through_o out_o the_o city_n and_o constitute_v over_o they_o archbishop_n boniface_n the_o pope_n legate_n qui_fw-la est_fw-la missus_fw-la sancti_fw-la petri._n and●we_v have_v decree_v every_o year_n to_o congregate_v a_o synod_n that_o in_o our_o presence_n the_o canonical_a decree_n and_o the_o right_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v restore_v and_o christian_a religion_n reform_v and_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o arles_n hold_v under_o the_o say_a emperor_n they_o begin_v the_o synod_n with_o a_o solemn_a prayer_n for_o the_o emperor_n the_o lord_n of_o all_o thing_n establish_v in_o the_o conservation_n of_o his_o faith_n our_o most_o serene_a and_o religious_a lord_n the_o emperor_n charles_n by_o who_o command_n we_o be_v here_o congregat_v and_o they_o conclude_v the_o synod_n with_o a_o submission_n to_o he_o these_o thing_n which_o we_o judge_v worthy_a to_o be_v amend_v we_o have_v brief_o note_v and_o decree_v they_o to_o be_v present_v to_o our_o lord_n the_o emperor_n beseech_v his_o clemency_n that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v here_o wa●tin●_n it_o may_v be_v supply_v by_o his_o prudence_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v amiss_o it_o may_v be_v amend_v by_o his_o judgement_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v reasonable_o tax_v it_o may_v be_v perfect_v by_o his_o help_n through_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o divine_a clemency_n ibidem_fw-la so_o the_o council_n of_o toures_n begin_v their_o synodical_a act_n that_o which_o be_v enjoin_v we_o by_o so_o great_a a_o prince_n we_o accomplish_v in_o meeting_n at_o the_o time_n and_o place_n appoint_v where_o be_v congregat_v we_o note_v such_o thing_n by_o chapter_n as_o need_v to_o be_v amend_v according_a to_o the_o canonical_a rule_n to_o be_v show_v to_o our_o most_o serene_a emperor_n so_o they_o conclude_v their_o act_n these_o thing_n we_o have_v ventilate_v in_o our_o assembly_n but_o how_o our_o most_o pious_a prince_n will_v be_v please_v to_o dispose_v of_o they_o we_o his_o faithful_a servant_n be_v ready_a at_o his_o beck_n and_o pleasure_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n ibidem_fw-la last_o the_o synod_n call_v synodus_fw-la cabilonensis_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o say_a emperor_n begin_v thus_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n assist_v we_o and_o the_o most_o renown_a emperor_n charles_n command_v we_o &c._n &c._n we_o have_v note_v out_o certain_a chapter_n wherein_o reformation_n seem_v necessary_a to_o we_o which_o be_v hereafter_o insert_v to_o be_v present_v to_o our_o say_a lord_n the_o emperor_n and_o refer_v to_o his_o most_o sacred_a judgement_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o prudent_a examination_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v reasonable_o decree_v and_o wherein_o we_o have_v be_v defective_a to_o be_v supply_v by_o his_o wisdom_n so_o they_o conclude_v we_o have_v ventilate_v these_o thing_n in_o our_o assembly_n but_o how_o it_o shall_v please_v our_o most_o pion_n prince_n to_o dispose_v of_o they_o we_o his_o faithful_a servant_n with_o a_o willing_a mind_n be_v ready_a at_o his_o beck_n and_o pleasure_n one_o egg_n be_v not_o like_a to_o another_o than_o these_o synodical_a representation_n be_v to_o our_o old_a english_a custom_n yet_o these_o be_v catholic_n time_n when_o king_n convocate_v synod_n of_o their_o own_o subject_n and_o either_o confirm_v or_o reject_v their_o act_n as_o they_o think_v meet_v for_o the_o public_a good_a and_o do_v give_v the_o pope_n own_o legate_n his_o power_n of_o preside_v in_o they_o by_o their_o constitution_n who_o join_v with_o the_o rest_n in_o these_o synodical_a acts._n i_o proceed_v to_o the_o three_o branch_n of_o the_o pope_n first_o usurpation_n pope_n concern_v the_o tie_n of_o english_a prelate_n by_o oath_n to_o a_o new_a allegiance_n to_o the_o pope_n no_o man_n can_v serve_v two_o supreme_a master_n where_o there_o be_v a_o possibility_n of_o clash_v one_o with_o another_o it_o be_v true_a one_o be_v but_o a_o political_a sovereign_n and_o the_o other_o pretend_v but_o a_o spiritual_a monarchy_n yet_o if_o this_o suppose_a spiritual_a monarch_n shall_v challenge_v either_o a_o direct_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o temporal_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n as_o pope_n boniface_n do_v nos_n nos_fw-la imperia_fw-la regna_fw-la principa●us_fw-la &_o quicquid_fw-la habere_fw-la mortales_fw-la possunt_fw-la auferre_fw-la &_o dare_v posse_fw-la we_o even_o we_o have_v power_n to_o take_v away_o and_o give_v empire_n kingdom_n principality_n and_o what_o soever_o moral_a man_n be_v capable_a of_o or_o challenge_v a_o indirect_a power_n to_o dispose_v of_o all_o temporal_a thing_n in_o order_n to_o spiritual_a good_a which_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o bellarmine_n and_o his_o party_n or_o last_o shall_v declare_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a which_o be_v true_o political_a as_o the_o patronage_n of_o church_n and_o all_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o such_o case_n the_o subject_n must_v desert_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o either_o suffer_v just_o as_o a_o traitor_n to_o his_o prince_n or_o be_v subject_v unjust_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v make_v as_o a_o heathen_a or_o publican_n this_o be_v a_o sad_a case_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o if_o this_o poor_a subject_n shall_v be_v further_o persuade_v that_o his_o spiritual_a prince_n have_v authority_n to_o absolve_v he_o from_o all_o sin_n law_n oath_n know_v that_o his_o temporal_a prince_n do_v challenge_v no_o such_o extravagant_a power_n what_o emperor_n or_o king_n can_v have_v any_o assurance_n of_o the_o fidelity_n of_o his_o own_o natural_a subject_n it_o be_v true_a a_o clerk_n may_v swear_v allegiance_n to_o his_o king_n and_o canonical_a obediente_a to_o his_o bishop_n but_o the_o case_n be_v not_o like_a no_o canonical_a obedience_n either_o be_v or_o can_v be_v in_o consistent_a with_o true_a allegiance_n the_o law_n full_a canon_n oblige_v without_o a_o oath_n and_o all_o that_o coactive_a power_n which_o a_o bishop_n have_v be_v derive_v from_o the_o prince_n and_o subject_v to_o the_o prince_n the_o question_n than_o be_v not_o whether_o a_o pastor_n may_v enjoin_v his_o flock_n to_o abstain_v from_o a_o unjust_a oath_n a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o a_o natural_a prince_n be_v justifiable_a both_o before_o god_n and_o man_n nor_o yet_o whether_o the_o clergy_n have_v immunity_n orought_v to_o enjoy_v immunity_n such_o as_o render_v they_o more_o capable_a of_o serve_v god_n always_o the_o first_o article_n in_o our_o great_a charter_n of_o england_n let_v the_o church_n enjoy_v her_o immunity_n the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o clergy_n man_n transgress_v of_o the_o canon_n aught_o to_o be_v try_v by_o canonical_a judge_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n especial_o in_o the_o first_o instance_n for_o by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n the_o delinquent_n be_v always_o allow_v the_o liberty_n to_o appeal_v to_o caesar._n but_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o pope_n by_o any_o act_n or_o decree_n of_o he_o can_v acquit_v english_a subject_n or_o prohibit_v they_o to_o do_v homage_n and_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o their_o king_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o the_o realm_n because_o they_o be_v clergyman_n and_o can_v command_v they_o whether_o the_o king_n will_v or_o not_o to_o take_v a_o new_a oath_n never_o hear_v of_o or_o practise_v former_o a_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o himself_o so_o it_o be_v call_v express_o in_o the_o edition_n of_o gregory_n the_o thirteen_o electo_fw-la in_o archiepiscopum_fw-la sedes_fw-la apostolica_fw-la pallium_fw-la non_fw-la tradet_fw-la nisi_fw-la prius_fw-la praestet_fw-la fidelitatis_fw-la &_o obedientiae_fw-la juramentum_fw-la the_o apostolical_a see_n will_v not_o deliver_v the_o pall_n to_o a_o archbishop_n elect_v unless_o he_o first_o take_v a●_n oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o obedience_n we_o have_v see_v already_o how_o henry_n the_o first_o be_v quiet_o seize_v and_o possess_v of_o the_o homage_n of_o his_o prelate_n and_o their_o oath_n of_o and_o their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o his_o predecessor_n before_o he_o so_o we_o have_v hear_v platina_n confess_v that_o before_o the_o popedom_n of_o paschalis_n the_o second_o the_o homage_n and_o feudall_a oath_n of_o bishop_n be_v perform_v to_o lay_v man_n that_o be_v to_o king_n not_o pope_n thus_o much_o eadmerus_n and_o nauclerus_fw-la and_o william_n of_o malmesbury_n and_o hoveden_n and_o jorvalensis_n do_v all_o assure_v we_o this_o agree_v sweet_o not_o only_a with_o the_o ancient_a law_n of_o feud_n 64._o from_o whence_o they_o borrow_v the_o name_n of_o investiture_n but_o also_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o decree_n of_o ancient_a counsel_n as_o diverse_a toledan_a counsel_n and_o that_o of_o aquisgrane_fw-la which_o who_o so_o desire_v to_o see_v may_v find_v
be_v the_o keeper_n of_o both_o the_o table_n and_o we_o say_v that_o for_o the_o first_o table_n the_o bishop_n ought_v to_o be_v his_o interpreter_n three_o as_o we_o question_v not_o the_o pope_n legislative_a or_o coactive_a power_n over_o his_o own_o subject_n so_o we_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n whether_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v a_o primacy_n of_o order_n as_o the_o successor_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o as_o a_o consequent_a thereof_o a_o right_a if_o he_o will_v content_v himself_o with_o it_o to_o summon_v counsel_n when_o and_o where_o there_o be_v no_o christian_n sovereign_n to_o do_v it_o and_o to_o join_v with_o other_o bishop_n in_o make_v spiritual_a law_n or_o canon_n such_o as_o the_o apostle_n make_v 25._o and_o such_o as_o the_o primitive_a bishop_n make_v before_o there_o be_v christian_n emperor_n but_o then_o those_o canon_n be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n not_o of_o the_o pope_n as_o those_o canon_n in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o law_n of_o the_o apostolical_a college_n the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n and_o brethren_n not_o the_o law_n of_o s._n peter_n then_o their_o law_n have_v no_o coactive_a obligation_n to_o compel_v christian_n in_o the_o outward_a court_n of_o the_o church_n against_o their_o will_n or_o further_o than_o they_o be_v please_v to_o submit_v themselves_o all_o exterior_a coactive_a power_n be_v from_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o therefore_o when_o and_o where_o emperor_n and_o king_n be_v christian_n to_o they_o it_o proper_o belong_v to_o summon_v counsel_n and_o to_o confirm_v their_o canon_n thereby_o make_v they_o become_v law_n because_o sovereign_a prince_n only_o have_v power_n to_o licence_n and_o command_v their_o subject_n to_o assemble_v to_o assign_v fit_a place_n for_o their_o assemble_v to_o protect_v they_o in_o their_o assembly_n and_o to_o give_v a_o coactive_a power_n to_o their_o law_n without_o which_o they_o may_v do_v their_o best_a to_o drive_v away_o wolf_n and_o to_o oppose_v heritick_n but_o it_o must_v be_v with_o such_o arm_n as_o christ_n have_v furnish_v they_o withal_o that_o be_v persuasion_n prayer_n tear_n and_o at_o the_o most_o separate_a they_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ._n the_o controversy_n be_v then_o about_o new_a upstart_n papal_a law_n either_o make_v at_o rome_n such_o be_v the_o decretall_n of_o gregory_n the_o nine_o boniface_n the_o eight_o clement_n the_o five_o and_o succeed_a pope_n or_o make_v in_o england_n by_o papal_a legate_n as_o otho_n and_o othobone_n whether_o the_o pope_n or_o his_o legate_n have_v power_n to_o make_v any_o such_o law_n to_o bind_v english_a subject_n and_o compel_v they_o to_o obey_v they_o against_o their_o will_n the_o king_n of_o england_n contradict_v it_o the_o first_o time_n that_o ever_o any_o canon_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n or_o any_o legislative_a legate_n of_o he_o be_v attempt_v to_o be_v obtrude_v upon_o the_o king_n or_o church_n of_o england_n be_v eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ._n the_o first_o law_n be_v the_o law_n against_o take_v investiture_n to_o bishopric_n from_o a_o lay_v hand_n and_o the_o first_o legate_n that_o ever_o preside_v in_o a_o english_a synod_n be_v johannes_n cremensis_n of_o both_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v former_o observe_v reader_n and_o be_v astonish_v if_o thou_o have_v so_o much_o faith_n to_o believe_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v pretend_v to_o a_o legislative_a power_n over_o british_a and_o english_a subject_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o yet_o never_o offer_v to_o put_v it_o in_o execution_n for_o above_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n it_o remain_v now_o to_o prove_v evident_o that_o henry_n the_o eight_o by_o his_o statute_n make_v for_o that_o purpose_n do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n any_o privilege_n which_o he_o and_o his_o predecessor_n have_v hold_v by_o inheritance_n from_o st._n peter_n and_o be_v peaceable_o possess_v of_o for_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o st._n peter_n be_v dead_a the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v first_o invade_v the_o right_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n to_o make_v law_n for_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o predecessor_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o have_v enjoy_v peaceable_o until_o the_o day_n of_o william_n rufus_n nemine_fw-la contradicente_fw-la and_o that_o the_o king_n law_n be_v evermore_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v true_a law_n and_o obligatory_a to_o the_o english_a subject_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n decree_n be_v never_o esteem_v to_o be_v bind_v law_n in_o england_n except_o they_o be_v incorporate_v in_o to_o our_o law_n by_o the_o king_n and_o church_n or_o kingdom_n of_o england_n whence_o it_o follow_v by_o irrefragable_a consequence_n that_o henry_n the_o eight_o be_v not_o the_o schismatic_a in_o this_o particular_a but_o the_o pope_n and_o those_o that_o maintain_v he_o or_o adhere_v to_o he_o in_o his_o usurpation_n first_o for_o the_o king_n right_a to_o make_v law_n not_o only_o concern_v the_o outward_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n but_o even_o concern_v the_o key_n of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n so_o far_o as_o to_o oblige_v they_o who_o be_v trust_v with_o that_o power_n by_o the_o church_n to_o do_v their_o duty_n it_o be_v so_o evident_a to_o every_o one_o who_o have_v but_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o our_o english_a law_n that_o to_o bestow_v labour_n on_o prove_v it_o be_v to_o bring_v owl_n to_o athens_n their_o law_n be_v extant_a make_v in_o all_o age_n concern_v faith_n and_o good_a manner_n heresy_n holy_a order_n the_o word_n the_o sacrament_n bishop_n priest_n monk_n the_o privilege_n and_o revenue_n of_o holy_a church_n marriage_n divorce_n simony_n the_o pope_n his_o sentemce_n his_o oppression_n and_o usurpation_n prohibition_n appeal_v from_o eeclesiasticall_a judge_n and_o general_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o ecclesiastical_a cognifance_n and_o this_o in_o those_o time_n which_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o to_o have_v be_v catholic_n more_o than_o this_o they_o inhibit_v the_o pope_n own_o legate_n to_o attempt_v to_o decree_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o king_n crown_n and_o dignity_n and_o if_o they_o approve_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n 1227._o they_o confirm_v they_o by_o their_o royal_a authority_n and_o so_o incorporate_v they_o into_o the_o body_n of_o the_o english_a law_n second_o that_o the_o pope_n decree_n never_o have_v the_o force_n of_o law_n in_o england_n without_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o king_n witness_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n as_o they_o be_v common_o call_v but_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o day_n to_o any_o one_o who_o read_v the_o eleven_o the_o six_o and_o forty_o and_o the_o one_o and_o sixty_v chapter_n that_o they_o be_v not_o make_v by_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n but_o some_o time_n after_o perhaps_o not_o by_o innocent_a the_o three_o but_o by_o some_o succeed_a pope_n for_o the_o author_n of_o they_o do_v distinguish_v himself_o express_o from_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n it_o be_v well_o provide_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n etc._n etc._n but_o because_o that_o statute_n be_v not_o observe_v in_o many_o church_n we_o confirm_v the_o foresay_a statute_n do_v add_v etc._n etc._n again_o it_o be_v know_v to_o have_v be_v prohibit_v in_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o inhibit_v the_o same_o moro_n strong_o etc._n etc._n how_o soever_o they_o be_v the_o pope_n decree_n but_o never_o be_v receive_v as_o law_n in_o england_n as_o we_o see_v evident_o by_o the_o three_o chapter_n that_o the_o good_n of_o clergiman_n be_v convict_v of_o heresy_n be_v forfeit_v to_o the_o church_n that_o all_o officer_n secular_a and_o ecclesiastical_a shall_v take_v a_o oath_n at_o their_o admission_n into_o their_o office_n to_o their_o power_n to_o purge_v their_o territory_n from_o heresy_n that_o if_o a_o temporal_a lord_n do_v neglect_v be_v admonish_v by_o the_o church_n to_o purge_v his_o land_n from_o heresy_n he_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o if_o he_o contemn_v to_o satisfy_v within_o a_o year_n the_o pope_n shall_v absolve_v his_o subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n and_o by_o the_o three_o and_o forty_o chapter_n that_o no_o ec●●●siasticall_a person_n be_v compel_v to_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o a_o lay_v man_n and_o by_o the_o six_o and_o forty_o chapter_n that_o ecclesiastical_a person_n be_v free_a from_o tax_n we_o never_o have_v any_o such_o law_n all_o good_n forfeit_v in_o that_o kind_n be_v ever_o confiscate_v to_o the_o king_n we_o never_o have_v any_o such_o oath_n every_o one_o be_v to_o answer_v for_o himself_o we_o know_v
legislative_a power_n in_o england_n be_v a_o gross_a usurpation_n and_o be_v suppress_v before_o it_o be_v well_o form_v but_o they_o be_v afraid_a of_o the_o old_a rule_n break_v ice_n in_o one_o place_n and_o it_o will_v crack_v in_o more_o if_o they_o do_v confess_v one_o error_n they_o shall_v be_v suspect_v of_o many_o if_o their_o infallibility_n be_v lose_v all_o be_v go_v and_o therefore_o they_o resolve_v to_o bear_v it_o out_o with_o head_n and_o shoulder_n and_o in_o place_n of_o disclaim_v a_o single_a power_n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o to_o give_v they_o a_o coactive_a obligation_n in_o exterior_a court_n they_o challenge_v a_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n some_o say_v ordinary_o other_o extraordinary_o some_o say_v direct_o other_a indirect_o to_o make_v and_o abrogate_v political_a law_n throughout_o christendom_n against_o the_o will_n of_o sovereign_a prince_n they_o who_o seem_v most_o moderate_a and_o cautelous_a among_o they_o be_v bad_a enough_o and_o deserve_v right_a well_o to_o have_v their_o work_n insert_v into_o the_o rebel_n catechism_n 6._o if_o a_o civil_a law_n be_v hurtful_a to_o the_o soul_n of_o subject_n and_o the_o prince_n will_v not_o abrogate_v it_o if_o another_o civil_a law_n be_v healthful_a to_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o subject_n and_o the_o temporal_a prince_n will_v not_o enact_v it_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o spiritual_a prince_n may_v abrogate_v the_o one_o and_o establish_v the_o other_o for_o civil_a power_n be_v inferior_a and_o consequent_o subject_a to_o spiritual_a power_n and_o the_o ecclesiastic_a republic_n ought_v to_o be_v perfect_a and_o sufficient_a to_o attain_v its_o end_n but_o the_o power_n to_o dispose_v of_o thing_n temporal_a be_v necessary_a to_o attain_v spiritual_a end_n and_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o choose_v a_o infidel_n or_o heretical_a prince_n but_o it_o be_v the_o same_o danger_n or_o damage_n to_o choose_v one_o who_o be_v no_o christian_a and_o to_o tolerate_v one_o who_o be_v no_o christian_a and_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o question_n whether_o he_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v tolerate_v or_o not_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o good_a time_n from_o these_o premise_n we_o may_v well_o expect_v a_o necessary_a collusion_n who_o ever_o see_v such_o a_o rope_n of_o sand_n so_o incoherent_a to_o itself_o and_o consist_v of_o such_o heterogeneous_a part_n compose_v altogether_o of_o mistake_n sure_o a_o man_n may_v conclude_v that_o either_o nocte_fw-la pinxit_fw-la the_o learned_a author_n paint_v this_o cypress_n tree_n in_o the_o night_n or_o he_o have_v a_o pitiful_a penurious_a cause_n that_o will_v afford_v no_o better_a proof_n but_o i_o hope_v the_o quarrel_n be_v dead_a or_o die_a and_o with_o it_o much_o of_o that_o animosity_n which_o it_o help_v to_o raise_v in_o the_o world_n at_o least_o i_o must_v do_v my_o adversary_n in_o this_o cause_n that_o right_a i_o find_v they_o not_o guilty_a of_o it_o let_v it_o die_v and_o the_o memory_n of_o it_o be_v extinguish_v for_o ever_o and_o ever_o sect._n i._n cap._n vii_o so_o i_o pass_v over_o from_o the_o pope_n legislative_a power_n england_n to_o his_o judiciary_n power_n perhaps_o the_o reader_n may_v expect_v to_o find_v something_o here_o of_o that_o great_a controversy_n between_o protestant_n and_o papist_n whether_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o last_o the_o high_a the_o infallible_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n with_o a_o council_n or_o without_o a_o council_n for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v not_o find_v they_o so_o well_o agree_v at_o home_n who_o this_o judge_n be_v all_o say_v it_o be_v the_o church_n but_o in_o determine_v what_o church_n it_o be_v they_o differ_v as_o much_o as_o they_o and_o we_o some_o say_v it_o be_v the_o essential_a church_n by_o reception_n whatsoever_o the_o universal_a church_n receive_v be_v infallible_o true_a other_o ●ay_v it_o be_v the_o representative_a church_n that_o be_v a_o general_n council_n other_o say_v it_o be_v the_o virtual_a church_n that_o it_o be_v the_o pope_n other_o say_v it_o be_v the_o virtual_a church_n and_o the_o representative_a church_n together_o that_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o a_o general_n council_n last_o other_o say_v it_o be_v the_o pope_n with_o any_o council_n either_o general_n or_o patriarchall_a or_o provincial_n or_o i_o think_v his_o college_n of_o cardinal_n may_v serve_v the_o turn_n and_o concern_v his_o infallibility_n all_o man_n confess_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v in_o his_o judgement_n and_o in_o his_o tenet_n as_o he_o be_v be_v a_o private_a doctor_n but_o not_o in_o his_o definition_n second_o the_o most_o man_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o may_v err_v in_o his_o definition_n if_o he_o define_v alone_o without_o some_o council_n either_o general_a or_o particular_a three_o other_o go_v yet_o high_o that_o the_o pope_n as_o pope_n with_o a_o particular_a council_n may_v define_v erroneous_o or_o heretical_o but_o not_o with_o a_o general_n council_n last_o many_o of_o they_o which_o go_v along_o with_o other_o for_o the_o pope_n infallibility_n do_v it_o upon_o a_o condition_n si_fw-mi maturus_fw-la procedat_fw-la &_o consilium_fw-la audiat_fw-la aliorum_fw-la pastorum_fw-la if_o he_o proeee_v mature_o and_o hear_v the_o counsel_n of_o other_o pastor_n 2._o indeed_o bellarmine_n say_v that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v demand_v whether_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v if_o he_o define_v rash_o without_o doubt_n they_o will_v all_o answer_n that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o define_v rash_o but_o this_o be_v mere_a presumption_n without_o any_o colour_n of_o proof_n i_o appeal_v to_o every_o rational_a man_n of_o what_o communion_n soever_o he_o be_v whether_o he_o who_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v err_v if_o he_o proceed_v mature_o upon_o due_a advice_n do_v presume_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v proceed_v immature_o or_o without_o due_a advice_n or_o not_o rather_o that_o he_o may_v proceed_v rash_o and_o without_o due_a advice_n otherwise_o the_o condition_n be_v vain_o and_o superfluous_o add_v frustra_fw-la fit_a perplura_fw-la quod_fw-la fieri_fw-la potest_fw-la per_fw-la pauciora_fw-la but_o the_o truth_n be_v we_o have_v nothing_o concern_v this_o question_n nor_o concern_v any_o jurisdiction_n mere_o spiritual_a in_o all_o the_o statute_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o they_o do_v all_o intend_v coactive_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n yet_o although_o nothing_o which_o he_o say_v do_v constrain_v i_o i_o will_v observe_v my_o wont_a ingenuity_n we_o give_v the_o supreme_a judicature_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n to_o a_o general_n council_n and_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o spiritual_a censure_n which_o be_v coactive_a only_o in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n but_o if_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n shall_v approve_v or_o confirm_v the_o act_n of_o a_o general_a council_n than_o they_o have_v a_o coactive_a power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n both_o political_a and_o ecclesiastical_a there_o be_v nothing_o that_o we_o long_o after_o more_o than_o a_o general_a council_n right_o call_v right_o proceed_v or_o in_o defect_n of_o that_o a_o free_a occidental_a council_n as_o general_n as_o may_v be_v but_o then_o we_o will_v have_v the_o bishop_n to_o renounce_v that_o oath_n which_o have_v be_v obtrude_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o council_n to_o declare_v it_o void_a i._o a._n bishop_n etc._n etc._n will_v be_v faithful_a to_o st._n peter_n and_o to_o the_o holy_a apostolical_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o our_o lord_n pope_n alexander_n etc._n etc._n i_o will_v be_v a_o assistant_n to_o retain_v and_o to_o defend_v the_o roman_a papacy_n and_o the_o royalty_n of_o st._n peter_n where_o this_o oath_n be_v esteem_v obligatory_a i_o do_v not_o see_v how_o there_o can_v be_v a_o free_a council_n but_o i_o retire_v myself_o to_o that_o which_o concern_v our_o present_a question_n and_o the_o law_n of_o henry_n the_o eyghth_n concern_v judiciary_n power_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n of_o the_o church_n the_o first_o branch_n of_o this_o three_o usurpation_n s_o england_n whether_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v receive_v appeal_v from_o england_n and_o send_v for_o what_o english_a subject_n he_o please_v to_o rome_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n the_o first_o precedent_n and_o the_o only_a precedent_n that_o we_o have_v of_o any_o appeal_v out_o of_o england_n to_o rome_n for_o the_o first_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v that_o of_o wilfrid_n archbishop_n of_o york_n though_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n that_o be_v rather_o a_o equitable_a than_o a_o legal_a appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o only_a bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n in_o the_o west_n and_o a_o honourable_a arbitrator_n and_o a_o faithful_n depositary_n of_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n not_o as_o a_o superior_a judge_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o adverse_a party_n summon_v to_o rome_n nor_o any_o witness_n produce_v both_o
our_o church_n witness_v the_o profession_n of_o king_n james_n witness_v all_o our_o statute_n themselves_o wherein_o all_o the_o part_n of_o papal_a power_n be_v enumerate_v which_o be_v take_v away_o his_o entroachment_n his_o usurpation_n his_o oath_n his_o collation_n provision_n pension_n ten_o first_o fruit_n reservation_n pall_v union_n commendam_n exemption_n dispensation_n of_o all_o kind_n confirmation_n licenses_fw-la faculty_n suspension_n appeal_v and_o god_n know_v how_o many_o pecuniary_a artifices_fw-la more_fw-it but_o of_o they_o all_o there_o be_v not_o one_o that_o concern_v jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a or_o which_o be_v a_o essential_a right_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n they_o be_v all_o branch_n of_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o usurp_v from_o the_o crown_n sundry_a of_o they_o from_o bishop_n and_o some_o find_v out_o by_o the_o pope_n themselves_o as_o the_o payment_n for_o pall_v which_o be_v nothing_o in_o s._n gregorye_n time_n but_o a_o free_a gift_n or_o liberality_n or_o bounty_n free_a from_o imposition_n and_o exaction_n last_o consider_v the_o ground_n of_o all_o our_o grievance_n express_v frequent_o in_o our_o law_n and_o in_o other_o writer_n the_o disinherit_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o peer_n the_o destruction_n and_o anullation_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a the_o vexation_n of_o the_o king_n liege_n people_n the_o impoverish_n of_o the_o subject_n the_o drain_n the_o kingdom_n of_o its_o treasure_n the_o decay_n of_o hospitality_n the_o disservice_n of_o god_n and_o fill_v the_o church_n of_o england_n with_o foreigner_n the_o exclude_v temporal_a king_n and_o prince_n out_o of_o their_o dominion_n the_o subject_n of_o the_o realm_n to_o spoil_v and_o ravine_v gross_a simoniacal_a contract_n sacrilege_n grievous_a and_o intolerable_a oppression_n and_o extortion_n jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a do_v neither_o disinherit_v the_o prince_n nor_o the_o peer_n nor_o destroy_v and_o annul_v the_o law_n and_o prerogative_n royal_a nor_o vex_v the_o king_n liege_n people_n nor_o impoverish_v the_o subject_a nor_o drain_v the_o kingdom_n of_o its_o treasure_n nor_o fill_v the_o church_n with_o foreigner_n nor_o exclude_v temporal_a king_n out_o of_o their_o dominion_n nor_o subject_v the_o realm_n to_o spoil_v and_o ravine_v authority_n pure_o spiritual_a be_v not_o guilty_a of_o the_o decay_n of_o hospitality_n or_o disservice_n of_o almighty_a god_n or_o simony_n or_o sacrilege_n or_o oppression_n and_o extortion_n no_o no_o it_o be_v the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o new_a roman_a law_n and_o mandate_n by_o new_a roman_a sentence_n and_o judgement_n by_o new_a roman_a pardon_n and_o dispensation_n by_o new_a roman_a synod_n and_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n by_o new_a roman_a bishop_n and_o clerk_n it_o be_v your_o new_a roman_a ten_o and_o first_o fruit_n and_o provision_n and_o reservation_n and_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o horrible_a mischief_n and_o damnable_a custom_n that_o be_v apparent_o guilty_a of_o all_o these_o evil_n these_o papal_a innovation_n we_o have_v take_v away_o indeed_o and_o deserve_o have_v show_v the_o express_a time_n and_o place_n and_o person_n when_o and_o where_o and_o by_o who_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v first_o introduce_v into_o england_n and_o we_o have_v restore_v to_o every_o bird_n his_o own_o feather_n to_o the_o king_n his_o political_a supremacy_n to_o the_o peer_n their_o patronage_n to_o the_o bishop_n that_o jurisdiction_n which_o be_v due_a to_o they_o either_o by_o divine_a right_n or_o humane_a right_n more_o than_o these_o innovation_n we_o have_v take_v nothing_o away_o that_o i_o know_v of_o or_o rather_o it_o be_v not_o we_o nor_o henry_n the_o eight_o who_o do_v take_v these_o innovation_n away_o but_o our_o ancestor_n by_o their_o law_n three_o four_o five_o hundred_o year_n old_a so_o soon_o as_o they_o begin_v to_o sprout_v out_o or_o indeed_o before_o they_o be_v well_o form_v as_o their_o statute_n yet_o extant_a do_v evidence_n to_o the_o world_n but_o that_o filth_n which_o they_o sweep_v out_o at_o the_o before_o door_n the_o roman_a emissarye_n bring_v in_o again_o at_o the_o back_n door_n all_o our_o part_n or_o share_v of_o this_o work_n be_v to_o confirm_v what_o our_o ancestor_n have_v do_v i_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o i_o may_v not_o conclude_v my_o discourse_n upon_o this_o subject_a mutatis_fw-la mutandis_fw-la with_o as_o much_o confidence_n as_o sanders_n do_v his_o visible_a monarchy_n quisquis_fw-la jurabit_fw-la per_fw-la viventem_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la etc._n etc._n whosoever_o shall_v swear_v by_o he_o that_o live_v for_o ever_o that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v not_o schismatical_a in_o respect_n of_o any_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o she_o have_v cast_v out_o at_o the_o reformation_n he_o shall_v not_o forswear_v himself_o but_o wager_n and_o oath_n and_o protestation_n be_v common_o the_o argument_n of_o such_o as_o have_v get_v the_o wrong_a end_n of_o the_o staff_n i_o will_v shut_v up_o this_o long_a discourse_n concern_v henry_n the_o eighths_n reformation_n with_o a_o short_a apostrophe_n to_o my_o countryman_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n in_o england_n they_o have_v be_v ta●ght_v that_o it_o be_v we_o who_o apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n in_o this_o point_n of_o the_o papacy_n that_o it_o be_v we_o who_o renounce_v the_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n whereas_o it_o be_v we_o who_o maintain_v ancient_a apostolical_a tradition_n against_o their_o upstart_n innovation_n whereas_o it_o be_v we_o who_o do_v propugne_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o ancestor_n against_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n if_o our_o ancestor_n be_v catholic_n in_o this_o cause_n we_o can_v be_v schismatical_a let_v they_o take_v heed_n lest_o whilst_o they_o fly_v o●t_v of_o a_o panicall_a fear_n from_o a_o suppose_a schism_n they_o do_v not_o plunge_v themselves_o over_o head_n and_o ear_n into_o real_a schism_n let_v they_o choose_v whether_o they_o will_v join_v with_o their_o ancestor_n in_o this_o cause_n 4._o or_o with_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o with_o both_o they_o can_v join_v if_o true_a english_a blood_n run_v in_o their_o vein_n they_o can_v be_v long_o deliberate_v about_o that_o which_o their_o ancestor_n even_o all_o the_o order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n vote_v unanimous_o that_o they_o will_v stand_v by_o their_o king_n and_o maintain_v the_o right_n of_o his_o imperial_a crown_n against_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o roman_a court._n i_o have_v represent_v clear_o to_o you_o the_o true_a controversy_n betweme_v the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n concern_v papal_a power_n not_o as_o it_o be_v state_v by_o private_a writer_n but_o in_o our_o english_a law_n a_o glass_n that_o can_v deceive_v we_o for_o so_o far_o as_o to_o let_v we_o see_v the_o right_a difference_n let_v they_o quit_v these_o gross_a usurpation_n why_o shall_v they_o be_v more_o ashamed_a to_o restore_v our_o lust_n right_n than_o they_o be_v to_o plunder_v we_o of_o they_o let_v they_o distinguish_v between_o jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a and_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n which_o for_o the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o it_o be_v political_a between_o the_o power_n of_o the_o sword_n which_o be_v long_v to_o the_o civil_a sovereign_n and_o not_o to_o the_o church_n further_o than_o he_o have_v be_v gracious_o please_v to_o communicate_v it_o between_o that_o obedience_n with_o procee_v from_o fear_n of_o wrath_n or_o from_o fear_n of_o god_n revenger_n to_o execute_v wrath_n that_o be_v the_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o that_o obedience_n which_o proceed_v mere_o from_o conscience_n 13._o and_o then_o there_o be_v hope_n we_o may_v come_v to_o understand_v one_o another_o better_a it_o be_v true_a there_o be_v other_o difference_n between_o we_o but_o this_o be_v the_o main_a difference_n which_o give_v denomination_n to_o the_o party_n and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o press_v those_o difference_n they_o may_v come_v to_o have_v such_o another_o account_n as_o they_o have_v now_o the_o wide_a the_o hole_n grow_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o millstone_n man_n see_v clear_a through_o it_o dies_fw-la diei_fw-la eructat_fw-la verbum_fw-la &_o nox_fw-la nocti_fw-la indica●_n scientiam_fw-la the_o latter_a day_n be_v the_o scholar_n of_o the_o former_a sect._n i._n cap._n x._o by_o this_o time_n we_o see_v that_o mr._n sergeant_n great_a dispatch_n will_v prove_v but_o a_o sleeveless_a errand_n unity_n and_o that_o his_o first_o movership_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o think_v shall_v have_v bear_v down_o all_o before_o it_o be_v a_o unsignificant_a expression_n and_o altogether_o impertinent_a to_o the_o true_a controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o unless_o as_o dido_n do_v encompass_v the_o
for_o free_a election_n but_o short_o after_o there_o be_v nothing_o to_o be_v hear_v of_o but_o provision_n and_o such_o simoniacal_a arts._n it_o be_v as_o easy_a to_o shape_v a_o coat_n for_o the_o moon_n which_o alteretb_v every_o day_n as_o to_o fit_v one_o constant_a tradition_n to_o all_o these_o diversify_v practice_n three_o he_o suppose_v that_o all_o parents_n have_n judgement_n to_o understand_v aright_o what_o they_o see_v and_o to_o penetrate_v into_o the_o secret_a cabal_n and_o practice_n of_o their_o time_n and_o ingenuity_n void_a of_o self_n interest_n to_o relate_v it_o right_o to_o their_o posterity_n but_o herein_o also_o he_o will_v fall_v much_o short_a of_o his_o aim_n most_o parent_n know_v what_o be_v act_v public_o but_o they_o know_v little_a what_o be_v do_v in_o their_o retire_a room_n they_o know_v who_o be_v their_o bishop_n but_o who_o invest_v he_o what_o oath_n he_o have_v make_v they_o be_v to_o seek_v most_o parent_n see_v a_o bishop_n fit_a in_o his_o consistory_n but_o by_o what_o authority_n he_o sit_v whether_o mere_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n or_o partly_o by_o concession_n of_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n they_o know_v nothing_o what_o do_v thy_o understand_v of_o any_o distinction_n between_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a and_o political_a what_o legend_n of_o foppery_n have_v be_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o this_o oral_a tradition_n and_o the_o credulity_n of_o parent_n and_o if_o all_o parent_n have_v judgement_n to_o understand_v these_o thing_n yet_o who_o shall_v secure_v we_o that_o they_o be_v void_a of_o self_n interest_n the_o philosopher_n find_v that_o all_o the_o people_n forsake_v he_o so_o soon_o as_o the_o market_n bell_n begin_v to_o ring_v last_o he_o suppose_v one_o constant_a succession_n of_o truth_n upon_o this_o tenor_n or_o method_n throughout_o many_o age_n why_o do_v we_o hear_v word_n when_o we_o see_v deed_n we_o see_v they_o change_v daily_o if_o they_o have_v not_o change_v we_o have_v have_v no_o need_n to_o leave_v their_o company_n i_o have_v show_v he_o when_o and_o where_o and_o by_o who_o all_o these_o change_n wherein_o they_o and_o we_o differ_v concern_v discipline_n do_v come_v into_o the_o church_n of_o england_n at_o least_o all_o those_o which_o make_v the_o breach_n between_o we_o immediate_a oral_a tradition_n without_o any_o further_a corroboration_n be_v but_o a_o ●oy_n perpetual_a and_o universal_a tradition_n be_v a_o undeniable_a evidence_n or_o so_o universal_a for_o time_n and_o place_n that_o the_o opposer_n have_v be_v censure_v in_o a_o manner_n universal_o for_o heretic_n or_o heterodox_n in_o a_o chain_n if_o one_o link_n be_v loose_a or_o have_v a_o notorious_a crack_n or_o flaw_n there_o be_v little_a trust_n to_o be_v repose_v in_o it_o then_o what_o credit_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o pretend_a chain_n of_o tradition_n where_o the_o eleven_o first_o link_n be_v altogether_o divide_v from_o the_o rest_n and_o fasten_v to_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o sovereign_a prince_n beyond_o the_o pope_n reach_n the_o four_o next_o link_n be_v full_a of_o crack_n and_o flaw_n the_o pope_n pull_v at_o the_o one_o end_n and_o the_o prince_n hold_v at_o the_o other_o the_o last_o link_n of_o all_o in_o england_n be_v put_v again_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o prince_n where_o so_o many_o century_n be_v want_v he_o be_v like_o but_o to_o maintain_v a_o poor_a tradition_n all_o this_o while_n i_o speak_v only_o of_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n to_o i_o why_o he_o of_o all_o other_o shall_v so_o much_o magnify_v this_o medium_fw-la of_o immediate_a tradition_n as_o a_o infallible_a rule_n for_o if_o i_o be_v not_o misinform_v by_o some_o friend_n his_o father_n chalk_v out_o another_o way_n to_o he_o by_o their_o example_n and_o instruction_n to_o hold_v himself_o in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o let_v that_o pass_v as_o not_o much_o material_a if_o he_o reduce_v his_o argument_n into_o any_o form_n he_o will_v quick_o find_v that_o it_o halt_v on_o both_o side_n whatsoever_o we_o receive_v by_o immediate_a tradition_n from_o our_o father_n as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n be_v infallible_o true_a but_o we_o receive_v those_o point_n of_o discipline_n wherein_o we_o differ_v by_o immediate_a tradition_n from_o our_o father_n as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ._n i_o deny_v both_o his_o proposition_n my_o reason_n he_o will_v find_v former_o at_o large_a i_o charge_v he_o for_o make_v two_o distinct_a rule_n of_o unity_n whereas_o one_o will_v have_v serve_v his_o turn_n that_o he_o may_v have_v more_o opportunity_n to_o shuffle_v the_o late_a usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n into_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n for_o this_o i_o be_o lash_v as_o a_o man_n that_o can_v or_o will_v not_o write_v common_a sense_n with_o a_o deal_n of_o such_o poor_a stuff_n not_o worth_a repeat_n can_v a_o man_n abandon_v his_o religion_n unless_o he_o abandon_v his_o civility_n also_o he_o may_v remember_v that_o i_o have_v the_o honour_n to_o be_v a_o doctor_n in_o the_o university_n i_o think_v assoon_o as_o he_o be_v a_o schoolboy_n in_o the_o country_n the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o charge_n be_v confess_v by_o himself_o 308_o that_o his_o first_o principle_n do_v also_o include_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o second_o if_o his_o second_o principle_n be_v comprehend_v in_o the_o first_o than_o it_o be_v no_o new_a distinct_a principle_n but_o either_o a_o inference_n or_o a_o tautology_n but_o let_v he_o carve_v and_o mince_v his_o principle_n into_o shred_n if_o he_o please_v rather_o than_o i_o will_v draw_v the_o see_v of_o contention_n about_o the_o dream_n of_o a_o shadow_n to_o the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o charge_n he_o answer_v 484_o that_o neither_o i_o nor_o any_o man_n else_o can_v instance_n of_o any_o usurpation_n which_o do_v ever_o come_v in_o either_o in_o secular_a or_o ecclesiastical_a government_n pretend_v that_o tenor_n or_o can_v come_v in_o so_o long_o as_o man_n adhere_v to_o that_o method_n do_v not_o he_o pretend_v to_o that_o tenor_n or_o indeed_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v and_o will_v make_v we_o believe_v they_o do_v adhere_v to_o that_o method_n if_o they_o do_v not_o his_o demonstration_n do_v not_o weigh_v a_o grain_n yet_o i_o have_v show_v he_o heap_n of_o usurpation_n more_o perhaps_o they_o he_o be_v desirous_a to_o see_v some_o man_n have_v make_v the_o pope_n infallible_a in_o point_n of_o faith_n former_o but_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o ever_o make_v he_o uncapable_a of_o usurp_a and_o i_o think_v will_v be_v the_o last_o if_o he_o can_v persuade_v we_o with_o reason_n to_o be_v thus_o mad_a he_o deserve_v to_o have_v his_o head_n stroke_v go_v go_v mr._n serjeant_n learn_v better_o there_o be_v more_o way_n of_o err_a in_o point_n of_o tradition_n either_o real_a or_o suppose_a 484_o than_o the_o conspiracy_n of_o a_o world_n of_o father_n to_o tell_v a_o world_n of_o child_n this_o lie_n that_o ten_o year_n ago_o they_o practise_v that_o which_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o know_v they_o do_v not_o practice_v of_o all_o man_n juggler_n pretend_v most_o to_o perspicuous_a evidence_n i_o be_v content_v to_o admit_v both_o his_o rule_n in_o general_n to_o try_v what_o use_n he_o can_v make_v of_o they_o against_o we_o but_o whether_o i_o use_v sharpness_n or_o blandishment_n he_o be_v still_o waspish_a see_v reader_n the_o right_a protestant_a method_n 485_o which_o be_v to_o bring_v the_o controversy_n from_o a_o determinate_a state_n to_o indetermination_n and_o confusion_n i_o fear_v he_o will_v rather_o dislike_v my_o be_v too_o distinct_a and_o particular_a i_o have_v show_v he_o express_o what_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n we_o have_v altogether_o reject_v and_o what_o we_o be_v not_o unwilling_a to_o acknowledge_v for_o peace_n sake_n if_o that_o will_v content_v he_o which_o be_v more_o than_o he_o have_v do_v hitherto_o as_o much_o as_o he_o will_v do_v and_o i_o fear_v more_o than_o he_o dare_v do_v they_o be_v not_o free_a from_o their_o jealousy_n and_o dissension_n at_o home_n among_o themselves_o hitherto_o he_o have_v not_o adventure_v to_o let_v we_o know_v into_o what_o church_n he_o himself_o resolve_v his_o faith_n whether_o the_o virtual_a church_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n or_o the_o representative_a church_n that_o be_v a_o general_n council_n or_o the_o essential_a church_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a multitude_n of_o believer_n who_o approbation_n be_v their_o reception_n and_o in_o this_o very_a panragraph_n he_o have_v one_o passage_n that_o point_v at_o the_o last_o opinion_n 486._o make_v the_o consent_n of_o catholic_n father_n immediate_o attest_v that_o they_o receive_v this_o doctrine_n from_o
notorious_o as_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n of_o indulgence_n of_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o new_a essentials_n of_o faith_n extra_n quas_fw-la nemo_fw-la salvus_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la say_v pope_n pius_n without_o the_o belief_n of_o which_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v then_o no_o man_n be_v save_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o christ._n if_o there_o be_v the_o least_o print_n of_o a_o contradiction_n here_o it_o be_v not_o in_o my_o discourse_n but_o between_o their_o own_o principle_n and_o their_o practice_n he_o taunt_v i_o sufficient_o for_o make_v the_o apostle_n creed_n a_o summary_n of_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o christian_n call_v it_o the_o wild_a topick_n that_o ever_o come_v from_o a_o rational_a head_n and_o will_v glad_o persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v only_o a_o act_n of_o prudence_n to_o keep_v out_o heterogeneous_a person_n in_o that_o present_a age_n which_o be_v to_o be_v enlarge_v as_o often_o as_o new_a heresy_n do_v arise_v i_o pity_v the_o young_a man_n who_o be_v no_o better_o acquaint_v with_o that_o value_n which_o both_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o his_o own_o doctor_n set_v upon_o the_o creed_n while_o he_o think_v to_o confute_v i_o dom._n he_o be_v ignorant_o condemn_v all_o they_o he_o condemn_v the_o father_n who_o make_v it_o to_o be_v the_o one_o only_o immovable_a and_o irreformable_a rule_n of_o faith_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n faith_n the_o key_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n the_o rule_n or_o square_n of_o the_o apostolical_a sermon_n after_o the_o composition_n of_o it_o wherein_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v collect_v into_o one_o breviary_n 38._o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v diffuse_v throughout_o the_o scripture_n he_o condemn_v his_o own_o author_n 2._o who_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o short_a comprehension_n or_o summary_n of_o all_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v bellarmine_n say_v it_o contain_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o more_o plain_o there_o be_v extant_a that_o most_o ancient_a symbol_n which_o be_v call_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n because_o the_o apostle_n compose_v it_o to_o this_o end_n that_o it_o may_v be_v agree_v among_o all_o man_n what_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_n faith_n whereof_o he_o produce_v witness_n st._n ambrose_n st._n hierom_n 9_o st._n austin_n maximus_n add_v that_o in_o the_o creed_n although_o brief_o be_v contain_v in_o a_o summary_n the_o whole_a object_n of_o faith_n according_a to_o that_o of_o st._n austin_n the_o creed_n be_v a_o simple_a i-bid_v short_a full_a comprehension_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o the_o simplicity_n may_v provide_v for_o the_o rudeness_n of_o the_o hearer_n 3._o the_o shortness_n for_o their_o memory_n and_o the_o fullness_n for_o their_o doctrine_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o catholic_n do_v confess_v that_o it_o be_v the_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n so_o there_o be_v more_o in_o the_o creed_n than_o a_o mere_a shibole_v to_o distinguish_v a_o ephraimite_n from_o a_o gileadite_n it_o be_v fundamentum_fw-la firmum_fw-la &_o unicum_fw-la not_o only_o a_o firm_a but_o a_o only_a foundation_n he_o ask_v i_o whether_o ever_o protestant_n do_v hold_v there_o be_v nothing_o of_o faith_n but_o the_o 12_o article_n in_o that_o creed_n i_o do_v not_o know_v how_o i_o come_v to_o be_v oblige_v to_o answer_v he_o to_o so_o many_o impertinent_a question_n but_o for_o once_o i_o will_v not_o refuse_v he_o protestant_n do_v know_v as_o well_o as_o himself_o that_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o some_o man_n at_o some_o time_n as_o that_o st._n paul_n have_v a_o cloak_n but_o there_o be_v no_o article_n or_o point_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o comprehend_v within_o the_o 12_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o here_o he_o serve_v we_o up_o again_o his_o twice_o sodden_a colewort_n that_o the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o baptism_n of_o infant_n the_o sacrament_n the_o scripture_n be_v not_o comprehend_v in_o the_o 12._o article_n i_o have_v but_o new_o answer_v the_o very_a same_o objection_n and_o here_o meander-like_a with_o a_o sudden_a turn_n he_o bring_v it_o in_o again_o but_o i_o will_v not_o wrong_v the_o reader_n so_o much_o as_o to_o follow_v he_o in_o his_o battology_n only_o if_o he_o think_v the_o creed_n be_v imperfect_a until_o the_o word_n filioque_fw-la be_v add_v he_o be_v much_o mistake_v but_o say_v he_o by_o the_o same_o logic_n we_o may_v accuse_v the_o church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n for_o press_v the_o word_n consubstantial_a pardon_v we_o good_a sir_n there_o be_v no_o analogy_n between_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o son_n with_o the_o father_n and_o your_o upstart_n doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n and_o image_n worship_n indeed_o the_o word_n consubstantial_a be_v not_o in_o the_o creed_n before_o the_o nicene_n council_n but_o the_o thing_n be_v and_o be_v deduce_v from_o the_o creed_n when_o the_o apostle_n deliver_v the_o creed_n to_o the_o church_n they_o do_v it_o by_o oral_a tradition_n and_o this_o be_v that_o famous_a tradition_n much_o mention_v in_o the_o father_n which_o you_o do_v altogether_o misapply_v to_o the_o justify_n of_o your_o new_a patch_n and_o when_o they_o deliver_v the_o creed_n they_o deliver_v likewise_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o creed_n by_o the_o same_o tradition_n and_o it_o be_v the_o most_o proper_a work_n in_o the_o world_n for_o those_o first_o ecumenical_a counsel_n to_o search_v out_o and_o determine_v by_o tradition_n the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o article_n where_o in_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n but_o for_o we_o now_o after_o fifteen_o or_o sixteen_o hundred_o year_n to_o inquire_v not_o only_o into_o new_a sense_n of_o the_o old_a article_n altogether_o unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_n but_o to_o find_v out_o new_a article_n which_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o old_a article_n and_o all_o this_o by_o tradition_n be_v ridiculous_a for_o whatsoever_o tradition_n we_o have_v we_o have_v from_o former_a age_n successive_o and_o therefore_o if_o they_o have_v no_o tradition_n for_o such_o a_o article_n or_o such_o a_o sense_n we_o can_v have_v none_o but_o such_o be_v all_o the_o twelve_o new_a article_n add_v to_o the_o creed_n by_o pius_n the_o four_o not_o only_o new_a sense_n of_o old_a article_n which_o have_v be_v too_o much_o but_o new_a article_n new_o coin_v which_o have_v no_o relation_n to_o the_o old_a article_n at_o all_o something_o be_v be_v de_fw-fr symbolo_fw-la contain_v in_o the_o creed_n something_n be_v contra_fw-la symbolum_n against_o the_o creed_n and_o something_n praeter_fw-la symbolum_n beside_o the_o creed_n first_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n either_o in_o the_o letter_n or_o in_o the_o sense_n or_o may_v be_v deduce_v by_o good_a consequence_n from_o the_o creed_n as_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n his_o two_o nature_n the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o addition_n of_o these_o be_v proper_o no_o addition_n but_o only_o a_o explication_n yet_o such_o a_o explication_n none_o under_o a_o general_n council_n can_v impose_v upon_o the_o church_n second_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o creed_n be_v not_o only_o unlawful_a to_o be_v add_v to_o the_o creed_n but_o they_o be_v heretical_a in_o themselves_o three_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v neither_o of_o the_o creed_n nor_o contain_v in_o the_o creed_n either_o explicit_o nor_o can_v be_v deduce_v by_o good_a consequence_n from_o the_o creed_n and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o creed_n but_o opinion_n or_o inferior_a truth_n which_o may_v be_v believe_v or_o disbelieved_a without_o any_o great_a danger_n of_o heresy_n of_o this_o nature_n be_v choose_v 12._o point_n or_o article_n which_o pius_n the_o four_o add_v to_o the_o creed_n to_o make_v these_o part_n of_o the_o creed_n and_o to_o oblige_v all_o christian_n to_o believe_v they_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n as_o pius_n the_o 4_o ●h_a do_v without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n be_v to_o change_v the_o symbolical_a apostolical_a faith_n and_o to_o add_v to_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n faith_n do_v consist_v in_o indivisibili_fw-la and_o the_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o can_v be_v contract_v or_o enlarge_v this_o be_v that_o which_o we_o charge_v the_o romanist_n withal_o and_o which_o i_o see_v not_o how_o they_o will_v be_v able_a to_o shake_v of_o not_o the_o explication_n of_o the_o old_a article_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o prescribe_v of_o inferior_a truth_n
as_o inferior_a truth_n to_o those_o who_o be_v under_o their_o jurisdiction_n nor_o the_o oblige_v of_o their_o subject_n not_o to_o oppose_v their_o determination_n for_o peace_n and_o tranquility_n sake_n but_o the_o add_v of_o new_a article_n or_o essentials_n to_o the_o creed_n with_o the_o same_o obligation_n that_o the_o old_a apostolical_a article_n have_v to_o be_v believe_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n either_o all_o these_o 12_o new_a article_n which_o be_v add_v to_o the_o creed_n by_o pius_n the_o four_o be_v implicit_o or_o virtual_o comprehend_v in_o the_o 12_o old_a article_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o may_v be_v deduce_v from_o they_o by_o necessary_a consequence_n the_o contrary_a where_o of_o be_v evident_a to_o all_o man_n or_o it_o be_v apparel_n that_o pius_n the_o 4._o have_v corrupt_v the_o creed_n and_o change_v the_o apostolical_a faith_n he_o may_v even_o as_o well_o let_v our_o 39_o article_n alone_o for_o old_a acquaintance_n sake_n dissuenda_fw-la non_fw-la dissecanda_fw-la est_fw-la amtcitia_fw-la as_o to_o bring_v they_o upon_o the_o stage_n and_o have_v nothing_o to_o say_v against_o they_o some_o of_o they_o be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n some_o other_o of_o they_o be_v practical_a truth_n which_o come_v not_o within_o the_o proper_a list_n of_o point_n or_o article_n to_o be_v believe_v last_o some_o of_o they_o be_v pious_a opinion_n or_o inferior_a truth_n which_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o all_o her_o son_n as_o not_o to_o be_v oppose_v not_o as_o essentials_n of_o faith_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o christian_n necessitate_v medii_fw-la under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n if_o he_o can_v charge_v we_o with_o this_o as_o we_o do_v they_o he_o say_v something_o the_o nicene_n constantinopolitan_n ephesian_a chalcedonian_a and_o atbanasian_n creed_n be_v but_o explication_n of_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v still_o call_v the_o apostle_n creed_n he_o will_v not_o for_o shame_n say_v that_o pius_n the_o fourth_n creed_n be_v only_o a_o explication_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n which_o have_v 12._o new_a distinct_a article_n add_v at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o 12._o old_a article_n of_o the_o apostle_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o new_a heresy_n but_o what_o be_v against_o some_o point_n find_v in_o the_o creed_n i_o know_v that_o as_o there_o be_v some_o error_n heretical_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n so_o there_o be_v other_o error_n which_o become_v heretical_a mere_o by_o the_o obstinacy_n of_o they_o who_o hold_v they_o yet_o if_o i_o have_v say_v so_o i_o have_v say_v no_o more_o than_o some_o father_n say_v and_o sundry_a of_o their_o own_o author_n neque_fw-la ulla_fw-la unquam_fw-la exit_fw-la it_o heresis_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la hoc_fw-la symbolo_fw-la damnart_n po●uerit_fw-la trever_o there_o be_v never_o any_o heresy_n which_o may_v not_o be_v condemn_v by_o this_o creed_n and_o so_o he_o may_v see_v clear_o if_o he_o will_v that_o it_o be_v no_o incomparable_a strain_n of_o weakness_n nor_o self_n contradict_v absurdity_n nor_o nonsense_n as_o he_o be_v please_v to_o vapour_n to_o charge_v they_o with_o change_v the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o the_o addition_n of_o new_a essentials_n of_o faith_n i_o will_v conclude_v this_o point_n with_o the_o excellent_a judgement_n of_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n peradventure_o some_o man_n will_v say_v shall_v there_o be_v no_o growth_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o church_n yes_o very_o much_o but_o so_o that_o it_o be_v a_o growth_n of_o faith_n not_o a_o change_n let_v it_o increase_v but_o only_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n the_o same_o article_n the_o same_o sense_n the_o same_o sentence_n let_v the_o religion_n of_o soul_n imitate_v the_o manner_n of_o body_n etc._n etc._n the_o member_n of_o infant_n be_v little_a young_a man_n great_a yet_o they_o be_v the_o same_o child_n have_v as_o many_o joint_n as_o man_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v add_v to_o or_o take_v from_o the_o number_n of_o the_o member_n the_o body_n must_v of_o necessity_n perish_v or_o become_v monstrous_a or_o be_v enfeeble_v so_o it_o be_v meet_v that_o christian_a religion_n do_v follow_v these_o law_n of_o proficiency_n etc._n etc._n but_o now_o he_o bring_v a_o rap_a accusation_n against_o i_o charge_v i_o with_o four_o falsification_n in_o one_o sentence_n 495._o and_o then_o conclude_v triumphant_o go_v thy_o way_n brave_a bishop_n if_o the_o next_o synod_n of_o protestant_n do_v not_o canonize_v thou_o for_o a_o interpreter_n of_o counsel_n they_o be_v false_a to_o their_o best_a interest_n who_o so_o bold_a as_o blind_a bayard_n here_o be_v a_o great_a deal_n more_o cry_n than_o wool_n but_o let_v we_o examine_v these_o great_a falsification_n my_o word_n be_v these_o the_o question_n be_v only_o who_o have_v change_v that_o doctrine_n or_o this_o discipline_n we_o or_o they_o we_o by_o substraction_n or_o they_o by_o addition_n the_o case_n be_v clear_a the_o apostle_n contract_v this_o doctrine_n into_o a_o summary_n that_o be_v the_o creed_n the_o primitive_a father_n expound_v it_o where_o it_o do_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o clear_a explication_n then_o follow_v the_o word_n which_o he_o except_v against_o the_o general_n council_n of_o ephesus_n do_v forbid_v all_o man_n to_o exact_v any_o more_o of_o a_o christian_a at_o his_o baptismal_a profession_n it_o be_v strange_a indeed_o to_o find_v four_o falsification_n in_o two_o short_a line_n but_o to_o find_v four_o falsification_n where_o there_o be_v not_o one_o syllable_n cite_v be_v altogether_o impossible_a i_o relate_v as_o of_o myself_o what_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n do_v i_o cite_v no_o authority_n at_o all_o neither_o in_o the_o ●●ext_n nor_o in_o the_o margin_n nor_o put_v one_o word_n into_o a_o different_a character_n his_o pen_n be_v so_o accustom_a to_o overreach_v beyond_o all_o aim_n that_o he_o can_v help_v it_o a_o scotch_a man_n will_v take_v the_o liberty_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v very_o good_a company_n the_o truth_n be_v i_o do_v forbear_v to_o cite_v it_o because_o i_o have_v cite_v it_o former_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o mounseur_fw-fr militier_fw-fr where_o he_o may_v have_v find_v it_o if_o he_o have_v please_v 7._o that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o no_o man_n to_o publish_v or_o compose_v another_o faith_n or_o creed_n then_o that_o which_o be_v define_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v dare_v to_o compose_v or_o offer_v any_o such_o to_o any_o person_n willing_a to_o b●_n conver●ed_v from_o paganism_n judaism_n or_o heresy_n if_o they_o shall_v be_v bishop_n or_o clerk_n shall_v be_v depose_v if_o layman_n anathematise_v if_o he_o can_v find_v any_o falsification_n in_o this_o let_v he_o not_o spare_v it_o but_o to_o find_v four_o falsification_n where_o not_o one_o word_n be_v cite_v be_v impossible_a in_o a_o word_n to_o deal_v plain_o with_o he_o his_o f●ur_n pretend_a falsification_n be_v a_o silly_a senseless_a ridiculous_a cavil_v to_o clear_v this_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o consider_v that_o this_o word_n faith_n in_o holy_a scripture_n counsel_n and_o father_n be_v take_v ordinary_o for_o the_o ob●ect_n of_o faith_n or_o for_o the_o sum_n of_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v the_o creed_n and_o so_o it_o be_v take_v in_o this_o very_a place_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o can_v be_v take_v otherwise_o for_o it_o be_v undeniable_a that_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v define_v publish_v and_o compose_v by_o the_o nicene_n father_n be_v the_o nicene_n creed_n or_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n explicate_v by_o the_o nicene_n father_n second_o we_o must_v consider_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n from_o the_o very_a infancy_n of_o christian_a religion_n do_v never_o admit_v any_o person_n to_o baptism_n in_o a_o ordinary_a way_n but_o it_o require_v of_o they_o a_o free_a profession_n of_o the_o creed_n or_o symbolical_a faith_n either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o their_o surety_n if_o they_o be_v infant_n and_o so_o do_v baptise_v they_o in_o that_o faith_n this_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostolical_a church_n this_o be_v that_o good_a profession_n which_o timothy_n make_v before_o many_o witness_n 12._o this_o be_v the_o universal_a practice_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o continue_v ever_o since_o until_o this_o day_n abrenunc●as_o abrenuncio_fw-la credis_fw-la credo_fw-la do_v thou_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n i_o do_v renounce_v they_o do_v thou_o believe_v in_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a &_o c._n all_o this_o i_o steadfast_o believe_v will_v thou_o be_v baptize_v in_o this_o faith_n it_o be_v my_o desire_n this_o baptisticall_a profession_n which_o he_o ignorant_o laugh_v
at_o be_v attest_v by_o father_n by_o counsel_n by_o leiturgy_n ancient_a and_o modern_a even_o by_o the_o leiturgy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o and_o this_o be_v the_o undoubted_a sense_n of_o this_o place_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n that_o no_o man_n shall_v dare_v to_o offer_v any_o other_o creed_n to_o any_o person_n willing●_n to_o be_v convert_v from_o paganism_n or_o judaism_n to_o christianity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o be_v baptize_v always_o upon_o palm_n sunday_n such_o of_o the_o catechument_n as_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o number_n of_o the_o faithful_a do_v petition_n for_o baptism_n the_o anniversary_n time_n where_o of_o do_v then_o approach_v who_o from_o their_o joint_n petition_v be_v call_v competentes_fw-la and_o from_o that_o day_n forward_o have_v some_o assign_v to_o expound_v the_o creed_n unto_o they_o whereof_o they_o be_v to_o make_v solemn_a profession_n at_o their_o baptism_n as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o homily_n of_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o creed_n make_v to_o the_o competentes_fw-la so_o we_o keep_v ourselves_o to_o the_o old_a faith_n 〈◊〉_d the_o whole_a christian_a world_n that_o be_v the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n explicate_v by_o the_o nicene_n constantinopolitan_n ephesine_n and_o chalcedonian_a father_n the_o same_o which_o be_v profess_v by_o they_o of_o old_a at_o their_o baptism_n and_o be_v still_o profess_a by_o we_o at_o our_o baptism_n the_o same_o wherein_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o themselves_o among_o the_o rest_n be_v baptize_v none_o of_o we_o all_o ever_o make_v any_o profession_n at_o our_o baptism_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o of_o the_o sovereign_n monarchical_a power_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n by_o divine_a right_n or_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n indulgence_n imageworship_n or_o the_o like_a wherefore_o we_o be_v resolve_v to_o adhere_v to_o that_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v profess_v always_o everywhere_o and_o by_o all_o person_n and_o particular_o both_o by_o they_o and_o we_o at_o our_o baptism_n in_o which_o faith_n and_o which_o alone_o we_o be_v make_v christian_n without_o either_o diminution_n or_o addition_n of_o any_o new_a essentials_n this_o be_v their_o faith_n former_o and_o this_o be_v we_o still_o but_o he_o object_v it_o be_v a_o great_a absurdity_n that_o thus_o the_o creed_n define_v by_o the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 495_o and_o the_o apostle_n creed_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o creed_n have_v you_o find_v out_o that_o yes_o indeed_o be_v they_o and_o always_o have_v be_v so_o repute_v in_o the_o church_n even_o in_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o in_o their_o ancient_a leiturgy_n which_o call_v the_o nicene_n creed_n the_o evangelicall_n creed_n the_o creed_n of_o the_o apostle_n inspire_v by_o the_o lord_n institute_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o when_o he_o grow_v old_a he_o will_v be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n i_o hope_v by_o this_o time_n he_o see_v that_o although_o i_o do_v not_o cite_v the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o this_o place_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v no_o falsifier_n of_o it_o yet_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n say_v more_o than_o i_o do_v in_o every_o respect_n i_o say_v only_o the_o council_n do_v forbid_v but_o the_o council_n itself_o go_v high_o that_o whosoever_o shall_v dare_v i_o say_v forbid_v to_o exact_v but_o the_o council_n itself_o go_v high_o whosoever_o shall_v dare_v to_o compose_v or_o publish_v or_o offer_v the_o original_a word_n be_v prospherein_o to_o offer_v and_o as_o it_o be_v translate_v into_o latin_a qui_fw-la verò_fw-la ausi_fw-la fuerint_fw-la aut_fw-la componere_fw-la fidem_fw-la alteram_fw-la aut_fw-la proffer_v aut_fw-la offer_n whosoever_o shall_v dare_v to_o compose_v or_o to_o utter_v or_o to_o offer_v another_o faith_n or_o creed_n one_o may_v compose_v or_o publish_v and_o not_o offer_v one_o may_v offer_v and_o not_o exact_a but_o whosoever_o do_v exact_a do_v more_o than_o offer_v if_o the_o council_n do_v forbid_v any_o man_n to_o compose_v or_o publish_v or_o offer_v any_o other_o creed_n much_o more_o do_v it_o forbid_v they_o to_o exact_v it_o three_o i_o say_v to_o exact_v any_o more_o than_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o it_o be_v explicate_v by_o the_o father_n that_o be_v concern_v essentials_n of_o say_v but_o the_o council_n go_v high_a to_o compose_v or_o publish_v or_o offer_v alteram_fw-la fidem_fw-la another_o creed_n contain_v either_o more_o or_o less_o either_o new_a essentials_n or_o new_a explication_n i_o say_v only_o at_o our_o baptismal_a profession_n but_o the_o council_n extend_v it_o further_o to_o the_o reconciliation_n of_o heretic_n as_o well_o as_o the_o baptism_n of_o pagan_n and_o jew_n and_o general_o to_o all_o occasion_n not_o allow_v any_o man_n clergy_n or_o lay_v to_o compose_v or_o publish_v any_o other_o creed_n or_o form_n of_o profession_n so_o every_o way_n the_o council_n say_v more_o than_o i_o say_v but_o he_o say_v there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o council_n of_o baptismal_a profession_n except_o the_o bare_a word_n fidem_fw-la well_o fides_fw-la in_o that_o place_n signify_v the_o creed_n and_o that_o creed_n which_o all_o christian_n do_v profess_v at_o their_o baptism_n be_v their_o baptismal_a profession_n but_o that_o be_v not_o all_o for_o as_o fides_fw-la signify_v their_o creed_n or_o profession_n of_o faith_n so_o those_o other_o word_n to_o any_o person_n willing_a to_o be_v convert_v from_o paganism_n or_o judaism_n signify_v as_o much_o as_o who_o desire_n to_o be_v christen_v or_o to_o be_v baptize_v but_o he_o say_v these_o word_n if_o the_o proposer_n of_o another_o faith_n ●e_n lay_v man_n let_v they_o be_v excommunicate_v do_v make_v it_o impossible_a to_o have_v relation_n to_o baptism_n because_o the_o ordinary_a minister_n of_o baptism_n be_v a_o clergy_n man_n if_o a_o sophister_n shall_v have_v bring_v such_o a_o argument_n in_o the_o school_n he_o will_v have_v be_v hiss_v out_o for_o his_o labour_n because_o one_o part_n of_o the_o canon_n have_v reference_n to_o lay_v man_n therefore_o no_o part_n of_o it_o can_v have_v reference_n to_o clergy_n man_n just_o like_o this_o a_o aethiopian_n tooth_n be_v white_a therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o part_n of_o he_o shall_v be_v black_a whereas_o the_o canon_n say_v express_o the_o contrary_a if_o they_o be_v bishop_n or_o clerk_n let_v they_o be_v depose_v if_o layman_n anathematise_v but_o this_o great_a censurer_n himself_o do_v falsify_v the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n indeed_o twice_o in_o this_o one_o place_n once_o in_o omit_v the_o word_n prospherein_o to_o offer_v second_o where_o he_o say_v that_o charisius_n have_v make_v a_o wicked_a creed_n it_o be_v not_o a_o wicked_a creed_n but_o a_o wicked_a exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n which_o the_o council_n condemn_v depravata_fw-la symboli_fw-la expositio_fw-la which_o be_v indeed_o produce_v by_o charisius_n but_o neither_o make_v by_o he_o nor_o approve_v by_o he_o but_o condemn_v by_o he_o as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o council_n observe_v reader_n with_o what_o gross_a carelessness_n these_o great_a censurer_n do_v read_v author_n and_o utter_v their_o fictitious_a fancy_n with_o as_o great_a confidence_n he_o will_v have_v call_v this_o forgery_n in_o another_o sect._n i._n cap._n xii_o he_o say_v i_o charge_v their_o whole_a church_n with_o change_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n into_o a_o sovereignty_n of_o power_n above_o general_n counsel_n whereas_o i_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v not_o their_o universal_a tenet_n and_o withal_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o who_o give_v such_o exorbitant_a privilege_n to_o pope_n do_v it_o with_o so_o many_o caution_n that_o they_o signify_v nothing_o and_o then_o courteous_o ask_v i_o whether_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n deserve_v that_o church_n unity_n shall_v be_v break_v for_o it_o party_n i_o do_v easy_o believe_v that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o his_o merry_a stationer_n contradiction_n what_o pitiful_a cavil_n do_v he_o bring_v for_o just_a exception_n first_o i_o do_v not_o clap_v it_o upon_o their_o whole_a church_n that_o be_v one_o injury_n or_o if_o i_o shall_v speak_v in_o his_o language_n a_o gross_a falsification_n but_o upon_o the_o guilty_a party_n second_o i_o never_o say_v that_o they_o who_o change_v the_o ancient_a government_n of_o the_o church_n into_o a_o sovereignty_n of_o power_n do_v it_o with_o so_o many_o caution_n but_o i_o speak_v express_o of_o they_o who_o ascribe_v infallibility_n and_o temporal_a power_n over_o prince_n to_o the_o pope_n this_o be_v another_o injury_n or_o falsification_n three_o how_o often_o must_v i_o tell_v he_o that_o we_o do_v not_o disunite_v ourselves_o from_o their_o church_n but_o only_o reinfranchise_v ourselves_o from_o their_o usurpation_n last_o this_o party_n which_o
advance_v the_o papacy_n above_o the_o representative_a church_n be_v no_o worse_a than_o their_o virtual_a church_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o their_o adherent_n they_o who_o have_v the_o key_n in_o their_o hand_n such_o a_o party_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o say_v his_o soul_n be_v his_o own_o against_o they_o nor_o maintain_v the_o contrary_a that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n he_o urge_v that_o i_o ascribe_v no_o more_o to_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n for_o their_o first_o movership_n movership_n but_o only_a authority_n to_o sit_v first_o in_o council_n or_o some_o such_o thing_n i_o ascribe_v unto_o the_o pope_n all_o that_o power_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o either_o by_o divine_a right_n or_o humane_a right_n at_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o do_v not_o hold_v it_o meet_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v his_o own_o carver_n and_o for_o s._n peter_n why_o do_v he_o not_o leave_v his_o word_v of_o it_o in_o general_n and_o fall_v to_o work_v with_o argument_n in_o particular_a if_o he_o have_v any_o we_o offer_v he_o a_o fair_a trial_n for_o it_o that_o s._n peter_n never_o enjoy_v or_o exercise_v any_o great_a or_o high_a power_n in_o the_o church_n than_o every_o one_o of_o the_o apostle_n have_v either_o extensive_o or_o intensive_o either_o in_o relation_n to_o the_o christian_a world_n or_o the_o apostolical_a college_n except_o only_o that_o primordium_fw-la vnitatis_fw-la or_o primacy_n of_o order_n which_o he_o scoff_v at_o every_o where_o yet_o neither_o do_v we_o make_v his_o first_o movership_n void_a of_o all_o activity_n and_o influence_n as_o he_o accuse_v we_o first_o we_o know_v he_o have_v apostolical_a power_n which_o be_v the_o high_a spiritual_a power_n upon_o earth_n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o second_o some_o power_n do_v belong_v to_o a_o first_o mover_n even_o by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n beside_o the_o first_o seat_n as_o to_o convocate_v the_o member_n to_o preserve_v order_n to_o propose_v such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o be_v discuss_v to_o receive_v the_o vote_n to_o give_v the_o sentence_n and_o to_o see_v it_o execute_v so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v trust_v by_o the_o body_n what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n believe_v 497_o of_o the_o pope_n inherit_v st._n peter_n privilege_n and_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o power_n before_o the_o reformation_n and_o how_o the_o breach_n be_v make_v and_o when_o i_o have_v show_v abundant_o already_o we_o have_v see_v his_o rare_a skill_n in_o the_o discovery_n of_o a_o falsification_n or_o a_o contradiction_n now_o let_v we_o see_v if_o his_o scent_n be_v as_o good_a to_o find_v out_o a_o absurdity_n he_o make_v i_o argue_v thus_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n because_o he_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n and_o much_o more_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v totum_fw-la est_fw-la minus_fw-la parte_fw-la and_o more_o do_v not_o contain_v less_o and_o then_o he_o crow_n out_o his_o victory_n aloud_o a_o hopeful_a disputant_n who_o chase_v rather_o to_o run_v upon_o such_o rock_n etc._n etc._n what_o rock_n do_v he_o mean_a i_o hope_v none_o of_o the_o acro●eraunia_n those_o ridiculous_a thing_n which_o he_o call_v rock_n be_v soapy_a bubble_n of_o his_o own_o blow_v this_o inference_n be_v none_o of_o i_o but_o his_o own_o be_v it_o not_o possible_a for_o this_o great_a pretender_n to_o sincerity_n to_o miss_v one_o paragraph_n without_o falsification_n give_v he_o leave_v to_o make_v inference_n and_o periphrasis_n which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o to_o say_v and_o africa_n do_v never_o abound_v so_o much_o with_o monster_n as_o he_o will_v make_v the_o most_o rational_a writing_n in_o this_o world_n abound_v with_o absurdity_n i_o desire_v the_o courteous_a reader_n to_o view_v the_o place_n and_o either_o to_o pity_v his_o ignorance_n or_o detest_v his_o impudence_n the_o word_n which_o i_o answer_v be_v these_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n actual_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n in_o all_o those_o country_n which_o keep_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o very_a year_n when_o this_o unhappy_a separation_n begin_v my_o answer_n be_v that_o this_o assertion_n do_v come_v far_o short_a of_o the_o truth_n in_o one_o respect_n for_o the_o pope_n exercise_v much_o more_o power_n in_o those_o country_n which_o give_v they_o leave_v than_o ever_o st_n peter_n pretend_v to_o here_o be_v no_o other_o inference_n but_o this_o the_o pope_n exercise_v more_o power_n than_o ever_o st._n peter_n pretend_v to_o therefore_o this_o assertion_n that_o he_o exercise_v st._n peter_n power_n come_v short_a of_o the_o truth_n which_o consequence_n be_v so_o evident_a that_o it_o can_v admit_v neirhe_a denial_n or_o doubt_v what_o have_v this_o to_o do_v with_o his_o whole_a be_v less_o than_o the_o part_n or_o more_o do_v not_o contain_v the_o less_o but_o now_o suppose_v i_o have_v say_v whole_a as_o he_o make_v i_o to_o say_v on_o his_o own_o head_n that_o in_o this_o case_n the_o whole_a be_v less_o than_o the_o part_n or_o more_o do_v not_o contain_v the_o less_o what_o have_v he_o to_o carp_v at_o have_v he_o never_o hear_v or_o read_v that_o in_o morality_n the_o half_a be_v more_o than_o the_o whole_a have_v he_o forget_v his_o ethic_n that_o he_o who_o swerve_v from_o the_o mean_a or_o strict_a measure_n of_o virtue_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o excess_n or_o in_o the_o defect_n be_v alike_o culpable_a and_o commethshort_a of_o his_o duty_n if_o the_o pope_n as_o successor_n to_o s._n peter_n do_v usurp_v more_o power_n then_o s._n peter_n have_v right_a to_o no_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n can_v call_v it_o the_o actual_a exercise_v of_o s._n peter_n power_n the_o second_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n be_v universal_a that_o as_o the_o pope_n exercise_v more_o power_n than_o be_v due_a to_o he_o in_o some_o place_n where_o he_o can_v get_v leave_n so_o in_o other_o place_n no_o less_o than_o three_o part_n of_o four_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n that_o be_v all_o the_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a church_n his_o universal_a monarchy_n which_o he_o claim_v be_v universal_o reject_v for_o this_o i_o be_o first_o revile_v be_v moderate_a expression_n of_o shamelessness_n sufficient_a to_o character_n this_o man_n etc._n etc._n if_o better_a be_v within_o better_a will_v come_v out_o but_o stultis_fw-la the_o saurus_fw-la iste_fw-la est_fw-la in_o linguasitus_fw-la ut_fw-la discant_fw-la male_a loqui_fw-la melioribus_fw-la and_o then_o when_o he_o have_v first_o censure_v i_o he_o attempt_v to_o answer_v i_o as_o well_o as_o he_o be_v able_a that_o the_o pope_n exercise_v his_o power_n over_o they_o by_o excommunicate_v they_o as_o revolter_n as_o revolter_n in_o good_a time_n they_o be_v christian_n and_o have_v governor_n of_o their_o own_o before_o either_o there_o be_v a_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o never_o acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v his_o subject_n until_o this_o day_n nor_o regard_v his_o excommunicatious_a upon_o that_o score_n at_o all_o if_o they_o be_v revolter_n the_o apostolical_a age_n and_o all_o succeed_v age_n be_v join_v in_o the_o revolt_n these_o be_v his_o rigorous_a demonstration_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n single_a jurisdiction_n by_o divine_a right_n from_o his_o own_o impotent_a action_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v a_o supremacy_n of_o power_n by_o divine_a right_n he_o have_v it_o over_o the_o world_n but_o that_o we_o see_v evident_o he_o never_o enjoy_v from_o the_o beginning_n if_o he_o do_v do_v not_o enjoy_v it_o universal_o from_o the_o beginning_n then_o certain_o it_o can_v be_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n i_o do_v begin_v with_o the_o eastern_a church_n because_o their_o case_n be_v plain_a as_o have_v protopatriarchs_a of_o their_o own_o and_o apostolical_a church_n of_o their_o own_o but_o when_o that_o be_v once_o acknowledge_v i_o shall_v be_v content_v to_o join_v issue_n with_o he_o in_o the_o west_n first_o for_o our_o britannic_a church_n and_o next_o even_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o that_o the_o pope_n universal_a monarchy_n and_o plenitude_n of_o sovereign_a power_n by_o divine_a right_n be_v neither_o deliver_v from_o parent_n to_o child_n by_o perpetual_a tradition_n as_o a_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n nor_o receive_v by_o the_o son_n of_o that_o individual_a church_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o a_o primacy_n of_o order_n or_o beginning_n of_o unity_n which_o we_o do_v not_o oppose_v nor_o yet_o those_o accession_n of_o humane_a power_n which_o christian_a emperor_n and_o ecumenical_a counsel_n have_v confer_v upon_o that_o see_v provide_v they_o be_v not_o exact_v as_o a_o divine_a right_n his_o first_o movership_n and_o
counsel_n which_o st._n gregory_n honour_v next_o to_o the_o four_o gospel_n this_o be_v one_o of_o those_o counsel_n which_o every_o succeed_a pope_n do_v swear_v solemn_o to_o observe_v to_o the_o least_o tittle_n i_o hope_v the_o pope_n have_v a_o better_a opinion_n of_o it_o then_o he_o at_o least_o for_o his_o oath_n sake_n good_a reader_n observe_v 112._o what_o cluster_n of_o forgery_n this_o great_a censurer_n have_v repacked_a together_o in_o the_o compass_n of_o a_o few_o line_n i_o need_v to_o cite_v no_o other_o authority_n to_o convince_v he_o but_o the_o very_a act_n of_o the_o council_n remember_v while_o thou_o live_v to_o distrust_v such_o author_n first_o he_o say_v this_o be_v no_o free_a act_n most_o false_o the_o bishop_n all_o own_a it_o as_o their_o free_a act_n by_o their_o subscription_n and_o by_o their_o testimony_n before_o the_o judge_n second_o he_o say_v the_o clergy_n of_o constantinople_n extort_a it_o with_o tumultuous_a importunity_n most_o false_o for_o it_o have_v be_v once_o decree_v before_o in_o the_o free_a general_a council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o then_o the_o clergy_n of_o constantinople_n do_v entreat_v the_o pope_n legate_n to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o first_o debate_n of_o it_o but_o they_o refuse_v and_o when_o the_o say_v legate_n allege_v in_o council_n that_o the_o father_n be_v force_v they_o all_o unanimous_o testify_v against_o they_o nemo_fw-la coactus_fw-la est_fw-la three_o he_o say_v it_o be_v vote_v after_o most_o of_o the_o father_n be_v depart_v and_o only_o those_o of_o the_o party_n of_o constantinople_n leave_v most_o false_o the_o father_n be_v forbid_v to_o depart_v and_o three_o of_o the_o protopatriarchs_a with_o their_o subordinate_a bishop_n determine_v it_o and_o subscribe_v the_o first_o day_n four_o he_o say_v it_o be_v disavow_v by_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o those_o under_o he_o most_o false_o for_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o those_o under_o he_o do_v ratify_v it_o and_o subscribe_v it_o in_o council_n five_o he_o say_v no_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v there_o good_a reason_n for_o there_o be_v none_o in_o be_v the_o see_v be_v vacant_a by_o the_o turn_n out_o of_o dioscorus_n though_o this_o be_v not_o so_o false_a as_o the_o rest_n yet_o it_o be_v as_o deceitful_a as_o the_o worst_a of_o they_o six_o he_o say_v the_o alexandrian_a metropolitan_n and_o bishop_n refuse_v to_o subscribe_v it_o they_o do_v not_o refuse_v to_o subscribe_v it_o but_o they_o request_v the_o council_n that_o because_o it_o be_v their_o custom_n to_o subscribe_v nothing_o until_o first_o it_o be_v subscribe_v by_o their_o patriarch_n that_o the_o subscription_n may_v be_v defer_v until_o they_o have_v a_o new_a patriarch_n choose_v and_o they_o themselves_o be_v content_v to_o stay_v in_o chalcedon_n until_o this_o be_v effect_v now_o judg●_n free_o reader_n whether_o this_o man_n do_v not_o deserve_v a_o whetstone_n that_o which_o follow_v concern_v immediate_n tradit_fw-la on_o be_v but_o one_o of_o his_o ordinary_a meander_n or_o a_o improper_a repetition_n of_o a_o heap_n of_o untruth_n and_o uncertainty_n blundr_v together_o to_o no_o purpose_n without_o any_o proof_n that_o the_o tradition_n of_o all_o church_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n be_v necessary_o a_o universal_a tradition_n that_o only_o those_o church_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n do_v adhere_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o tradition_n and_o all_o other_o church_n have_v renounce_v it_o that_o all_o those_o who_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v never_o pretend_v immediate_a tradition_n for_o those_o point_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o it_o be_v so_o many_o gross_a untruth_n that_o the_o very_a same_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o some_o christian_a parent_n to_o their_o child_n be_v deliver_v by_o all_o christian_a parent_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o whatsoever_o be_v deliver_v by_o christian_a parent_n of_o this_o age_n be_v necessary_o derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n by_o au_fw-fr uninterrupted_a succession_n and_o that_o external_a unity_n do_v necessary_o imply_v a_o identity_n of_o tradition_n be_v contingent_a uncertainty_n which_o may_v be_v true_a or_o may_v be_v false_a his_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o the_o beginner_n of_o a_o novelty_n to_o pretend_v that_o their_o immediate_a father_n have_v teach_v they_o that_o which_o the_o whole_a world_n see_v they_o do_v not_o be_v absurd_a and_o impertinent_a and_o may_v serve_v equal_o to_o both_o party_n first_o it_o be_v absurd_a and_o contrary_a to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n we_o see_v daily_o by_o experience_n that_o there_o be_v innovation_n in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n and_o both_o party_n pretend_v to_o ancient_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n he_o may_v as_o well_o tell_v we_o nil_fw-la int●a_fw-la est_fw-la oleum_fw-la nil_fw-la extra_fw-la est_fw-la in_o nuce_n duri_fw-la the_o arrian_n pretend_v to_o immediate_a tradition_n as_o well_o as_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n undiscernible_a second_o it_o be_v impertinent_a change_n in_o religion_n be_v neither_o so_o sudden_a nor_o so_o visible_a as_o he_o imagine_v but_o be_v often_o make_v by_o degree_n in_o tract_n of_o time_n at_o leisure_n insensible_o undiscernible_o a_o error_n come_v first_o to_o be_v a_o common_a opinion_n than_o a_o pious_a doctrine_n last_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o seldom_o do_v error_n appear_v at_o first_o in_o their_o own_o shape_n fallit_fw-la enim_fw-la vitium_fw-la specie_fw-la virtutis_fw-la &_o umbrâ_fw-la a_o beginning_n of_o unity_n in_o time_n may_v grow_v to_o be_v a_o sovereignty_n of_o power_n investiture_n be_v take_v away_o from_o king_n for_o fear_n of_o simony_n and_o this_o fear_n of_o simony_n before_o the_o wheel_n have_v do_v run_v produce_v the_o most_o sublimate_v art_n of_o simony_n that_o ever_o be_v devise_v who_o will_v or_o can_v have_v suspect_v that_o those_o huge_a cry_n for_o free_a liberty_n of_o election_n shall_v have_v end_v in_o papal_a provision_n or_o the_o exemption_n of_o clergyman_n from_o their_o allegiance_n to_o their_o native_a prince_n have_v be_v a_o introduction_n to_o a_o ●ew_a oath_n of_o allegiance_n to_o a_o foreign_a prelate_n the_o subjection_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o pope_n begin_v with_o picture_n proceed_v to_o poetry_n and_o end_v in_o down_o right_a maxim_n of_o theology_n there_o have_v always_o be_v a_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n as_o well_o as_o a_o mystery_n of_o piety_n the_o tare_n be_v sow_v while_o man_n sleep_v and_o be_v not_o present_o discern_v it_o be_v not_o i_o who_o have_v change_v faith_n into_o opinion_n my_o faith_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o always_o be_v profess_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n by_o every_o christian_a at_o his_o baptism_n and_o comprehend_v in_o the_o ancient_a creed_n of_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v they_o who_o have_v change_v opinion_n into_o faith_n when_o pius_n the_o four_o metriculate_v 12._o new_a opinion_n among_o the_o ancicient_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n let_v they_o be_v probable_a or_o pious_a or_o erroneous_a or_o what_o you_o will_v i_o be_o sure_a they_o be_v but_o opinion_n and_o consequent_o no_o article_n of_o faith_n i_o say_v such_o opinion_n of_o a_o inferior_a nature_n necessary_a be_v not_o so_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v he_o ask_v whether_o they_o be_v necessary_a or_o no_o if_o they_o be_v not_o necessary_a why_o do_v i_o grant_v they_o to_o be_v necessary_a by_o say_v they_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a if_o they_o be_v necessary_a why_o call_v i_o they_o but_o opinion_n do_v he_o know_v no_o distinction_n of_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a as_o other_o something_o be_v be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v necessitate_v medii_fw-la to_o obtain_v salvation_n something_o be_v be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v only_o necessitate_v precepti_fw-la because_o they_o be_v command_v and_o they_o may_v be_v command_v by_o god_n or_o man_n the_o latter_a be_v not_o so_o necessary_a as_o the_o former_a something_o be_v be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v by_o all_o man_n some_o other_o thing_n be_v only_o by_o some_o man_n 10._o be_v thou_o a_o master_n in_o israel_n and_o know_v not_o these_o thing_n something_o be_v be_v enjoin_v to_o be_v hold_v only_o for_o peace_n sake_n those_o be_v not_o so_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v as_o the_o commandment_n or_o the_o sacrament_n or_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n the_o pope_n infallibility_n in_o his_o definition_n of_o faith_n be_v but_o a_o opinion_n and_o yet_o they_o hold_v it_o necessary_a the_o superiority_n of_o a_o general_n council_n above_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o necessary_a opinion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n 17._o and_o now_o the_o contrary_a opinion_n be_v fere_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la almost_o a_o article_n
of_o faith_n he_o know_v better_a by_o this_o time_n what_o i_o understand_v by_o point_n of_o faith_n public_o profess_v even_o the_o article_n of_o the_o creed_n which_o every_o christian_a that_o ever_o be_v from_o christ_n time_n until_o this_o day_n profess_v at_o his_o baptism_n all_o the_o christian_a world_n have_v ever_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o old_a creed_n never_o any_o man_n yet_o be_v baptize_v into_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o new_a creed_n if_o these_o new_a article_n be_v as_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o public_o profess_v for_o the_o common_a salvation_n as_o the_o old_a they_o do_v they_o wrong_v to_o baptise_v they_o but_o into_o one_o half_a of_o the_o christian_a faith_n tradition_n he_o trouble_v himself_o needless_o with_o jealousy_n and_o suspicion_n lest_o under_o the_o notion_n of_o faith_n universal_o profess_v and_o the_o christian_a world_n unite_v i_o shall_v seek_v a_o shelter_n or_o patrociny_n for_o arrian_n or_o socinian_o or_o any_o other_o mushroom_n sect_n as_o if_o the_o deity_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o deliver_v by_o universal_a tradition_n or_o not_o hold_v by_o the_o christian_a world_n unite_v because_o of_o thei●_n opposition_n i_o do_v not_o look_v upon_o any_o such_o sect_n which_o do_v or_o do_v oppose_v the_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n before_o their_o day_n as_o live_v and_o last_a stream_n but_o as_o sudden_a and_o violent_a torrent_n neither_o do_v i_o regard_v their_o opposition_n to_o the_o catholic_n church_n any_o more_o than_o of_o a_o company_n of_o phrenetick_a person_n while_o i_o see_v plain_o a_o part_n ante_fw-la that_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o wheat_n do_v grow_v without_o those_o tare_n and_o a_o part_n post_fw-la that_o their_o error_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o exception_n of_o he_o have_v great_a force_n against_o his_o immediate_a tradition_n shall_v the_o child_n of_o arrian_n or_o socinian_o persist_v in_o their_o arrian_n or_o socinian_n principle_n because_o they_o be_v deliver_v to_o they_o as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o their_o err_a parent_n but_o against_o my_o universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n they_o have_v no_o force_n at_o all_o neither_o do_v i_o look_v upon_o their_o petty_a interruption_n as_o a_o impeachment_n to_o the_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n no_o more_o than_o i_o esteem_v a_o great_a mountain_n to_o be_v a_o impeachment_n to_o the_o roundness_n of_o the_o earth_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o church_n of_o greece_n and_o all_o the_o other_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a church_n which_o recede_v from_o this_o universal_a tradition_n in_o the_o case_n in_o difference_n between_o we_o concern_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o recede_v from_o they_o non_fw-la tellus_fw-la cymbam_fw-la tellurem_fw-la cymba_fw-la reliquit_fw-la he_o know_v little_a in_o antiquity_n who_o do_v not_o know_v that_o the_o creed_n be_v a_o tradition_n both_o material_o as_o a_o thing_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o formal_o as_o be_v deliver_v by_o oral_a tradition_n but_o he_o who_o shall_v say_v as_o he_o do_v that_o all_o the_o point_v controvert_v between_o we_o and_o they_o be_v deliver_v as_o derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n we_o in_o a_o practice_n as_o daily_o visible_a as_o be_v the_o apostle_n creed_n by_o our_o forefather_n as_o invoke_v saint_n for_o their_o intercession_n the_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o image_n pray_v for_o the_o dead_a adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o supreme_a head_n to_o use_v his_o own_o phrase_n be_v a_o frontless_a man_n his_o very_a mumble_v of_o they_o and_o chap_a of_o they_o by_o half_n as_o if_o he_o dare_v not_o utter_v they_o right_o out_o be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o contrary_a we_o do_v not_o charge_v they_o only_o with_o invoke_v saint_n for_o their_o intercession_n or_o to_o speak_v more_o proper_o with_o the_o invoke_a god_n to_o hear_v the_o intercession_n of_o his_o saint_n but_o with_o more_o insolent_a form_n of_o ultimate_a prayer_n to_o the_o creature_n to_o protect_v they_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n to_o deliver_v they_o from_o the_o devil_n to_o confer_v spiritual_a grace_n upon_o they_o and_o to_o admit_v they_o into_o heaven_n precibus_fw-la meritisque_fw-la not_o only_o by_o their_o prayer_n but_o likewise_o by_o their_o merit_n as_o improper_a and_o address_n as_o if_o one_o shall_v fall_v down_o on_o his_o knee_n before_o a_o courtier_n and_o beseech_v he_o to_o give_v he_o a_o pardon_n or_o to_o knight_v he_o mean_v only_o that_o he_o shall_v mediate_v for_o he_o to_o the_o king_n we_o do_v not_o question_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o their_o have_v of_o image_n but_o worship_v of_o they_o and_o worship_v of_o they_o with_o the_o same_o worship_n which_o be_v due_a to_o the_o prototype_n we_o condemn_v not_o all_o pray_n for_o the_o dead_a not_o for_o their_o resurrection_n and_o the_o consummation_n of_o their_o happiness_n but_o their_o prayer_n for_o their_o deliverance_n out_o of_o purgatory_n we_o ourselves_o adore_v christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o we_o dare_v not_o adore_v the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o although_o we_o know_v no_o divine_a right_n for_o it_o yet_o if_o he_o will_v be_v content_v with_o it_o for_o peace_n sake_n we_o can_v afford_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o primacy_n of_o order_n by_o humane_a right_n which_o be_v all_o that_o antiquity_n do_v know_v and_o if_o any_o of_o our_o ancestor_n in_o any_o of_o these_o particular_n do_v swerve_v from_o the_o universal_a perpetual_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v much_o better_a warrant_n to_o return_v to_o the_o apostolical_a line_n and_o level_n than_o he_o himself_o have_v to_o desert_n those_o principle_n temerarious_o which_o his_o immediate_a forefather_n teach_v he_o as_o deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o derive_v from_o they_o his_o next_o exception_n be_v a_o mere_a logomachy_n that_o i_o call_v two_o of_o his_o assertion_n inference_n what_o do_v this_o concern_v either_o the_o person_n or_o the_o cause_n either_o this_o be_v to_o contend_v about_o the_o shadow_n of_o a_o ass_n or_o i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v let_v they_o be_v premise_n or_o conclusion_n which_o he_o will_v they_o may_v be_v so_o dispose_v to_o make_v they_o either_o if_o they_o be_v neither_o what_o do_v they_o here_o if_o they_o be_v conclusion_n they_o be_v inference_n he_o call_v the_o former_a conclusion_n their_o chief_a objection_n who_o ever_o hear_v of_o a_o objection_n without_o a_o inference_n and_o the_o second_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v no_o inference_n that_o it_o comprehend_v four_o inference_n one_o from_o the_o first_o principle_n another_o from_o the_o second_o principle_n and_o the_o three_o from_o both_o principle_n that_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a have_v the_o only_a right_a doctrine_n in_o virtue_n of_o the_o first_o principle_n and_o the_o only_a right_a government_n in_o virtue_n of_o the_o second_o principle_n and_o unity_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n in_o virtue_n of_o both_o principle_n and_o the_o last_o conclusion_n be_v the_o general_n inference_n from_o all_o these_o and_o by_o consequence_n we_o hold_v they_o only_o to_o make_v the_o entire_a catholic_n church_n i_o say_v true_o that_o we_o hold_v both_o their_o rule_n of_o unity_n i_o add_v that_o we_o hold_v they_o both_o in_o the_o right_a sense_n that_o be_v in_o the_o proper_a literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n but_o what_o their_o sense_n of_o they_o be_v concern_v they_o not_o we_o if_o by_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n he_o understand_v a_o single_a sovereignty_n or_o supremacy_n of_o power_n by_o virtue_n of_o christ_n own_o ordinance_n we_o hold_v it_o not_o indeed_o neither_o do_v the_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n ever_o hold_v it_o so_o likewise_o if_o by_o tradition_n of_o our_o ancestor_n he_o understand_v universal_a and_o perpetual_a tradition_n or_o as_o it_o be_v universal_a and_o perpetual_a we_o join_v hand_n with_o he_o but_o if_o by_o tradition_n he_o understand_v the_o particular_a and_o immediate_a tradition_n of_o his_o father_n or_o ten_o thousand_o father_n or_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o father_n of_o one_o province_n or_o one_o patriarchate_o in_o one_o age_n exclude_v three_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o this_o age_n and_o not_o regard_v former_a age_n between_o this_o age_n and_o the_o apostle_n we_o renounce_v his_o rule_n in_o this_o sense_n as_o a_o bond_n of_o error_n not_o of_o unity_n and_o yet_o in_o general_a according_a to_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n we_o embrace_v it_o as_o it_o be_v propose_v by_o himself_o that_o the_o doctrine_n inherit_v from_o our_o fore_n
father_n as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v only_o to_o be_v acknowledge_v or_o obligatory_a so_o we_o acknowledge_v both_o his_o rule_n in_o the_o literal_a sense_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la but_o the_o pope_n single_a supremacy_n of_o power_n and_o particular_a tradition_n be_v never_o principle_n of_o unity_n neither_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la nor_o de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o so_o he_o may_v seek_v for_o his_o flat_a schismatic_a de_fw-fr facto_fw-la at_o rome_n i_o say_v there_o be_v a_o fallacy_n in_o logic_n of_o more_o interrogation_n than_o one_o when_o question_n of_o a_o different_a nature_n be_v mix_v to_o which_o one_o vniform_a answer_n can_v not_o be_v give_v he_o say_v he_o put_v no_o interrogatory_n at_o all_o to_o i_o true_a but_o he_o propound_v ambiguous_a proposition_n to_o be_v answer_v by_o i_o confound_v st._n peter_n and_o the_o pope_n a_o headship_n of_o order_n and_o a_o headship_n of_o power_n which_o be_v all_o one_o a_o head_n of_o order_n have_v power_n to_o act_n first_o as_o well_o as_o sit_v ●irst_n but_o he_o act_v not_o by_o his_o own_o single_a power_n but_o by_o the_o conjunct_a power_n of_o the_o body_n or_o college_n to_o show_v he_o 510._o that_o i_o be_o not_o ashamed_a of_o my_o voluntary_a rail_n as_o he_o phrase_v it_o too_o silly_a to_o merit_v transcribe_v or_o answer_v i_o will_v transcribe_v it_o for_o he_o the_o church_n or_o court_n of_o rome_n have_v sophisticated_a the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n by_o their_o supplementall_a article_n contrary_a to_o the_o first_o principle_n and_o have_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n a_o tyrannical_a government_n contrary_a to_o the_o second_o principle_n and_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v the_o entire_a catholic_n church_n that_o by_o they_o both_o they_o be_v convict_v to_o have_v make_v themselves_o guilty_a of_o superstition_n and_o schism_n if_o this_o be_v rail_n what_o term_n do_v his_o language_n deserve_v if_o this_o be_v silly_a what_o pitiful_a stuff_n be_v he_o he_o say_v my_o only_a way_n to_o clear_v our_o church_n from_o schism_n side_n be_v to_o disprove_v his_o two_o rule_n i_o answer_v he_o be_v double_o mistake_v first_o in_o put_v we_o to_o prove_v or_o disprove_v who_o be_v the_o person_n accuse_v the_o defendant_n duty_n be_v to_o answer_v not_o to_o prove_v that_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o the_o accuser_n they_o accuse_v we_o of_o schism_n therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o prove_v their_o rule_n whereon_o they_o ground_n their_o accusation_n in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o they_o take_v they_o not_o put_v we_o to_o disprove_v they_o he_o urge_v that_o by_o this_o method_n no_o rebel_n ought_v to_o give_v any_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v so_o because_o he_o be_v accuse_v of_o rebellion_n by_o his_o lawful_a governor_n by_o his_o leave_n he_o that_o condemn_v a_o subject_a of_o rebellion_n before_o he_o have_v prove_v his_o accusation_n do_v he_o wrong_n but_o he_o say_v the_o truth_n be_v wheresoever_o there_o be_v a_o contest_v each_o side_n accuse_v the_o other_o and_o each_o side_n defend_v itself_o against_o the_o other_o accusation_n but_o we_o be_v the_o first_o accuser_n who_o can_v not_o with_o any_o face_n have_v pretend_v to_o reform_v unless_o we_o accuse_v first_o our_o actual_a governor_n of_o usurpation_n i_o tell_v he_o before_o that_o he_o be_v double_o mistake_v now_o i_o must_v be_v bold_a to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v three_o way_n mistake_v first_o the_o pope_n be_v none_o of_o our_o actual_a governor_n in_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n seco●dly_o our_o reformation_n be_v no_o accusation_n but_o a_o enfranchisement_n of_o ourselves_o sub_fw-la moderamine_fw-la inculpatae_fw-la tutelae_fw-la three_o i_o have_v already_o manifest_v the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n upon_o other_o manner_n of_o ground_n they_o his_o ambiguous_a rule_n as_o we_o have_v prove_v our_o intention_n so_o let_v he_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v he_o my_o second_o answer_n be_v that_o although_o the_o proof_n do_v rest_n on_o ourside_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o approve_v of_o his_o advice_n that_o be_v to_o disprove_v his_o two_o rule_n my_o reason_n be_v evident_a we_o approve_v of_o his_o two_o rule_n as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o himself_o it_o be_v not_o we_o but_o they_o who_o have_v swerve_v from_o they_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v madness_n in_o we_o to_o disprove_v they_o he_o say_v he_o dare_v swear_v in_o my_o behalf_n that_o i_o never_o speak_v true_a word_n in_o my_o life_n and_o out_o of_o his_o supererogatory_n kindness_n offer_v himself_o to_o be_v bind_v for_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v never_o follow_v any_o advice_n that_o bid_v i_o speak_v home_o to_o the_o point_n what_o silly_a nonsense_n be_v this_o shall_v i_o follow_v any_o man_n advice_n to_o disprove_v that_o which_o i_o approve_v i_o have_v speak_v so_o home_o to_o the_o point_n without_o any_o advice_n that_o i_o expect_v little_a thanks_n from_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n for_o it_o what_o he_o prate_v of_o a_o discipline_n leave_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o henry_n the_o eighths_n time_n be_v ridiculous_a indeed_o and_o it_o equal_o ridiculous_a to_o hope_v to_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o the_o removal_n of_o a_o few_o upstart_n usurpation_n be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o discipline_n leave_v by_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n 513._o and_o last_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o fancy_n that_o late_a usurpation_n may_v not_o be_v reform_v by_o the_o pattern_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n and_o the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o succeed_a age_n because_o we_o receive_v they_o by_o particular_a tradition_n from_o our_o immediate_a father_n that_o one_o place_n which_o he_o repeat_v as_o have_v be_v omit_v by_o i_o have_v be_v answer_v full_o to_o every_o part_n of_o it_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o section_n be_v but_o a_o repetition_n of_o what_o he_o have_v say_v without_o add_v anything_o that_o be_v new_a and_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o treatise_n he_o give_v we_o a_o summa_fw-la totalis_fw-la of_o it_o again_o either_o he_o must_v distrust_v his_o reader_n memory_n or_o his_o judgement_n and_o yet_o for_o fear_v of_o not_o be_v understand_v he_o recapitulate_v it_o all_o over_o again_o in_o his_o index_n sure_o he_o think_v his_o discourse_n so_o profound_a that_o no_o man_n understand_v he_o except_o he_o repeat_v it_o over_o and_o over_o again_o and_o for_o my_o part_n i_o do_v never_o meet_v with_o such_o a_o torrent_n of_o word_n and_o such_o shallowness_n of_o matter_n and_o so_o i_o leave_v he_o to_o s._n augustine_n censure_n allege_v by_o himself_o in_o mala_fw-la causa_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la aliter_fw-la at_o malam_fw-la causam_fw-la quis_fw-la coegit_fw-la eos_fw-la habere_fw-la sect._n ii_o that_o they_o who_o cast_v papal_a power_n out_o of_o england_n be_v no_o protestant_n but_o roman_a catholic_n throughout_o except_o only_o in_o that_o one_o point_n of_o the_o papacy_n hitherto_o he_o say_v he_o have_v be_v the_o large_a in_o his_o reply_n because_o the_o former_a point_n be_v fundamental_a concern_v and_o total_o decisive_a of_o the_o question_n they_o do_v concern_v the_o question_n indeed_o to_o blunder_v and_o to_o confound_v universal_a tradition_n with_o particular_a tradition_n a_o primacy_n of_o order_n with_o a_o single_a supremacy_n of_o power_n jurisdiction_n pure_o spiritual_a with_o external_a jurisdiction_n in_o foro_fw-la contensioso_fw-it otherwise_o they_o concern_v not_o the_o question_n and_o for_o decide_v of_o the_o question_n wherewithal_o shall_v he_o decide_v it_o who_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o allege_v one_o authority_n in_o the_o case_n divine_a or_o humane_a not_o a_o text_n of_o scripture_n not_o a_o canon_n of_o a_o council_n not_o a_o testimony_n of_o a_o father_n who_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o any_o universal_a or_o perpetual_a tradition_n but_o only_o to_o the_o particular_a immediate_a tradition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o this_o he_o have_v only_o pretend_v to_o but_o neither_o prove_v it_o nor_o attempt_v to_o prove_v it_o nor_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o he_o to_o prove_v by_o the_o particular_a tradition_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o sovereign_a monarch_n of_o the_o church_n by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n his_o only_a ground_n be_v his_o own_o vapourous_a fancy_n much_o like_o zenoes_n vaunt_n who_o use_v to_o brag_v that_o he_o sometime_o want_v opinion_n but_o never_o want_v argument_n my_o six_o ground_n he_o style_v exception_n and_o why_o exception_n but_o let_v they_o be_v ground_n or_o exception_n or_o whatsoever_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v and_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n that_o every_o one_o of_o those_o trifle_n and_o toy_n
truth_n of_o what_o i_o say_v take_v the_o very_a word_n of_o two_o canon_n of_o that_o council_n 9_o but_o if_o a_o clerk_n have_v a_o cause_n against_o his_o own_o bishop_n or_o against_o another_o bishop_n let_v he_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n but_o if_o a_o bishop_n or_o a_o clerk_n have_v a_o complaint_n against_o the_o metropolitan_a of_o the_o same_o province_n let_v he_o repair_v either_o to_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o the_o see_v of_o their_o royal_a city_n of_o constantinople_n aend_v let_v he_o be_v judge_v there_o we_o see_v every_o primate_n that_o be_v to_o say_v every_o patriarch_n in_o general_a in_o his_o own_o diocese_n or_o patriarchate_o and_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o particular_a out_o of_o his_o own_o diocese_n be_v equal_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o same_o in_o effect_n be_v decree_v in_o the_o seventeen_o canon_n that_o if_o there_o shall_v happen_v any_o difference_n concern_v the_o possession_n of_o the_o church_n it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a to_o they_o who_o affirm_v themselves_o to_o be_v grieve_v to_o sue_v before_o the_o holy_a synod_n of_o the_o province_n but_o if_o any_o man_n be_v grieve_v by_o his_o metropolitan_a let_v he_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o diocese_n or_o by_o the_o holy_a see_v of_o constantinople_n i_o have_v read_v those_o silly_a evasion_n which_o your_o great_a scholar_n be_v force_v to_o make_v use_n of_o for_o answer_n to_o these_o downright_a canon_n sometime_o by_o primate_n of_o the_o diocese_n which_o signify_v all_o patriarch_n they_o understand_v and_o the_o pope_n do_v man_n use_v such_o improper_a expression_n which_o no_o man_n can_v understand_v in_o pen_v of_o law_n be_v it_o not_o a_o great_a condiscension_n for_o the_o visible_a monarch_n of_o all_o christendom_n to_o stoop_v to_o so_o mean_a a_o title_n as_o the_o primate_n of_o one_o single_a diocese_n but_o alas_o it_o will_v do_v he_o no_o good_a for_o if_o it_o be_v take_v in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v the_o most_o unjust_a canon_n in_o the_o world_n to_o deprive_v all_o patriarch_n of_o their_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n except_o the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n the_o council_n which_o be_v so_o careful_a to_o preserve_v the_o bishop_n his_o right_n and_o the_o metropolitan_a his_o right_n can_v not_o be_v so_o careless_a to_o destroy_v patriarchall_a right_n or_o the_o patriarch_n themselves_o who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o make_n of_o this_o canon_n so_o stupid_a to_o join_v in_o it_o at_o other_o time_n they_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v only_o of_o the_o first_o instance_n not_o of_o appeal_v this_o be_v weak_a and_o weak_a what_o have_v a_o metropolitan_a to_o do_v with_o private_a cause_n of_o the_o first_o instance_n out_o of_o his_o own_o bishopric_n what_o have_v the_o patriarch_n of_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n to_o do_v to_o judge_v cause_n of_o the_o first_o instance_n in_o other_o patriarchates_n the_o case_n be_v clear_a if_o any_o man_n be_v grieve_v by_o his_o bishop_n he_o may_v appeal_v to_o his_o metropolitan_a and_o a_o synod_n and_o if_o any_o man_n be_v grieve_v by_o his_o metropolitan_a he_o may_v appeal_v to_o his_o patriarch_n and_o if_o this_o absurd_a sense_n which_o they_o imagine_v be_v true_a yet_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n may_v receive_v appeal_v from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n as_o well_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n let_v they_o wind_n and_o wrest_v and_o turn_v thing_n as_o they_o can_v they_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o reconcile_v the_o papal_a pretension_n with_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n i_o have_v neither_o change_v my_o mind_n nor_o my_o note_n concern_v eleutherius_fw-la his_o letter_n to_o king_n lucius_n i_o do_v i_o do_v esteem_v it_o to_o be_v of_o dubious_a faith_n so_o much_o i_o intimate_v if_o it_o be_v not_o counterfeit_v so_o much_o he_o intimate_v as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v record_n in_o our_o history_n be_v it_o necessary_a with_o he_o to_o inculcate_v the_o same_o doubt_v over_o and_o over_o so_o often_o as_o we_o may_v take_v occasion_n thus_o far_o then_o we_o be_v of_o accord_n but_o in_o the_o rest_n we_o differ_v whole_o he_o be_v positive_a 133._o as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v record_n the_o pope_n authority_n do_v appear_v i_o be_o as_o positive_a as_o much_o as_o we_o have_v record_n the_o king_n authority_n do_v appear_v for_o if_o those_o record_n be_v true_a eleutherius_fw-la leave_v the_o legislative_a part_n to_o king_n lucius_n and_o his_o bishop_n this_o be_v enough_o to_o answer_v he_o he_o add_v though_o our_o faith_n rely_v on_o immediate_a tradition_n for_o its_o certain_a rule_n and_o not_o upon_o fragment_n of_o old_a author_n that_o be_v in_o plain_a english_a upon_o his_o bare_a word_n without_o any_o authority_n how_o shall_v a_o man_n prove_v ancient_a tradition_n but_o by_o author_n yet_o after_o all_o this_o flourish_n he_o produce_v we_o not_o one_o old_a author_n but_o st._n prosper_n a_o stranger_n to_o our_o affair_n and_o he_o to_o no_o purpose●_n who_o say_v only_o what_o he_o hear_v in_o italy_n that_o pope_n celestine_n send_v st._n german_n in_o his_o own_o stead_n to_o free_v the_o briton_n from_o pelaginisme_n and_o convert_v the_o scot_n by_o palladius_n if_o all_o this_o be_v as_o true_a as_o gospel_n it_o signify_v just_a nothing_o i_o have_v show_v former_o that_o there_o be_v no_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o it_o but_o only_o of_o the_o key_n of_o knowledge_n he_o rejoin_v that_o he_o rely_v on_o these_o word_n vice_fw-la sua_fw-la in_o his_o own_o stead_n which_o show_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o his_o office_n to_o do_v it_o why_o shall_v it_o not_o the_o key_n of_o order_n belong_v to_o a_o bishop_n as_o well_o as_o the_o key_n of_o jurisdiction_n and_o more_o especial_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o a_o apostolical_a church_n as_o pope_n celestine_n be_v and_o in_o such_o a_o case_n as_o that_o be_v the_o pelagian_a controversy_n to_o testify_v the_o apostolical_a tradition_n he_o be_v bind_v by_o his_o office_n to_o do_v it_o and_o he_o trust_v s._n german_a to_o do_v it_o in_o his_o place_n all_o this_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n there_o be_v no_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o case_n but_o of_o charity_n and_o devotion_n yet_o if_o it_o be_v not_o altogether_o impertinent_a to_o the_o purpose_n we_o have_v in_o hand_n i_o shall_v show_v he_o that_o there_o be_v ten_o time_n better_a ground_n to_o believe_v that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o a_o french_a synod_n then_o by_o pope_n celestine_n not_o out_o of_o a_o obscure_a author_n but_o out_o of_o authentic_a undoubted_a history_n as_o constantius_n in_o the_o life_n of_o s._n german_n venerable_a bede_n matthew_n westminster_n and_o many_o other_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a that_o they_o be_v so_o much_o provoke_v be_v not_o able_a to_o produce_v a_o proof_n of_o one_o papal_a act_n of_o jurisdiction_n do_v in_o britain_n for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n here_o he_o catch_v hold_v at_o a_o say_n of_o i_o which_o he_o understand_v no_o more_o than_o the_o man_n in_o the_o moon_n that_o all_o other_o right_n of_o jurisdiction_n do_v follow_v the_o right_n of_o ordination_n which_o he_o take_v as_o though_o i_o mean_v to_o make_v ordination_n itself_o to_o be_v a_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n though_o i_o deny_v it_o and_o distinguish_v it_o from_o it_o to_o make_v the_o reader_n to_o understand_v it_o we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o actual_a ordination_n and_o a_o right_a to_o ordain_v actual_a ordination_n where_o there_o be_v no_o precedent_a obligation_n for_o that_o person_n to_o be_v ordain_v by_o that_o bishop_n do_v imply_v no_o jurisdiction_n at_o all_o but_o if_o there_o be_v a_o precedent_n right_n in_o the_o ordeiner_n to_o ordain_v that_o man_n and_o a_o precedent_a obligation_n in_o the_o person_n ordain_v to_o be_v ordain_v by_o that_o bishop_n than_o it_o do_v imply_v all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n suitable_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o ordeiner_n as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o patriarch_n all_o patriarchall_a jurisdiction_n if_o he_o be_v a_o metropolitan_a all_o metropolitical_a jurisdiction_n if_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n all_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n and_o the_o inference_n hold_v likewise_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o right_a precedent_n to_o ordain_v nor_o obligation_n to_o be_v ordain_v there_o be_v no_o jurisdiction_n follow_v but_o i_o show_v out_o of_o our_o own_o history_n and_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a register_n so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v set_v down_o by_o platina_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v no_o right_a to_o ordain_v our_o british_n primate_fw-la but_o that_o they_o
reject_v be_v the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n or_o papal_a usurpation_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o such_o rigorous_a demonstration_n but_o depend_v upon_o testimony_n which_o logician_n call_v a_o inartificiall_a way_n of_o argue_v but_o if_o by_o rigorous_a demonstration_n he_o understand_v convince_a proof_n those_o ground_n which_o i_o offer_v in_o this_o section_n do_v contain_v a_o rigorous_a demonstration_n that_o discipline_n which_o be_v brimful_a of_o intolerable_a rapine_n and_o extortion_n and_o simony_n and_o sacrilege_n which_o rob_v king_n and_o subject_n ecclesiastical_a and_o secular_a of_o their_o just_a right_n which_o be_v introduce_v into_o the_o church_n of_o england_n eleven_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n which_o have_v a_o malignant_a influence_n upon_o the_o body_n politic_a which_o be_v destructive_a to_o the_o right_a end_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o in_o stead_n of_o secure_v man_n in_o peace_n do_v thrust_v they_o into_o manifest_a and_o manifold_a danger_n both_o of_o soul_n and_o body_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o general_n counsel_n and_o the_o ancient_a liberty_n of_o particular_a church_n qua_fw-la talis_fw-la as_o it_o be_v such_o be_v no_o legacy_n of_o christ_n but_o aught_o to_o be_v purge_v and_o reform_v from_o all_o such_o abuse_n and_o usurpation_n but_o such_o be_v that_o papal_a discipline_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n exercise_v in_o england_n before_o the_o reformation_n and_o less_o than_o which_o they_o will_v not_o go_v and_o such_o be_v all_o those_o branch_n of_o papal_a power_n which_o we_o have_v cast_v out_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o assertion_n i_o have_v make_v manifest_a in_o my_o vindication_n c._n 6_o and_o this_o be_v the_o place_n of_o a_o further_a examination_n of_o it_o if_o he_o do_v discharge_v the_o part_n of_o a_o fair_a solid_a disputant_n to_o leave_v his_o windy_a invective_n which_o signify_v nothing_o to_o the_o cause_n but_o to_o his_o own_o shame_n and_o to_o proceed_v close_o and_o ingenuous_o to_o the_o investigation_n of_o truth_n without_o prejudice_n or_o partiality_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a he_o mince_v my_o ground_n and_o conceal_v they_o and_o skip_v over_o whatsoever_o dislike_v he_o and_o chop_v they_o and_o change_v they_o and_o confound_v they_o that_o i_o can_v know_v my_o own_o conception_n again_o as_o he_o have_v dress_v they_o and_o disorder_v they_o and_o mutilate_v they_o i_o propose_v five_o distinct_a ground_n of_o our_o reformation_n and_o cast_v out_o so_o many_o branch_n as_o we_o do_v of_o papal_a power_n if_o he_o deal_v like_o a_o just_a adversary_n he_o shall_v pursue_v my_o method_n step_v by_o step_n but_o he_o reduce_v my_o five_o ground_n into_o three_o that_o between_o two_o method_n he_o may_v conceal_v and_o smother_v whatsoever_o he_o have_v no_o disposition_n to_o answer_v as_o he_o deal_v with_o many_o point_n of_o weight_n and_o moment_n and_o particular_o with_o all_o those_o testimony_n and_o instance_n i_o bring_v to_o prove_v the_o intolerable_a extortion_n and_o manifold_a usurpation_n and_o malignant_a influence_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n upon_o the_o body_n politic_a and_o ecclesiastic_a be_v much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o my_o discourse_n but_o i_o do_v not_o altogether_o blame_v he_o for_o they_o be_v so_o foul_a that_o a_o man_n can_v find_v small_a credit_n or_o contentment_n in_o defend_v they_o for_o once_o rather_o then_o loose_v his_o company_n i_o will_v pursue_v his_o method_n let_v we_o give_v he_o the_o hear_n he_o reduce_v my_o five_o ground_n to_o three_o first_o such_o as_o entrench_v upon_o eternity_n and_o conscience_n may_v not_o any_o heretic_n object_n that_o the_o church_n impose_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n or_o complain_v of_o new_a creed_n when_o she_o add_v to_o her_o public_a profession_n some_o point_n of_o faith_n hold_v former_o may_v not_o he_o complain_v of_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n as_o your_o brother_n puritan_n do_v for_o surplesses_n &_o c_o may_v not_o he_o pretend_v that_o all_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n be_v good_a christian_n and_o that_o the_o church_n be_v tyrannical_a in_o hold_v they_o for_o excommunicate_v may_v he_o not_o shuffle_v together_o faith_n with_o opinion_n and_o false_o allege_v as_o you_o do_v here_o you_o be_v force_v to_o approve_v the_o pope_n rebellion_n against_o general_n counsel_n and_o take_v oath_n to_o maintain_v papal_a usurpation_n this_o be_v all_o the_o answer_v i_o get_v of_o this_o brave_a disputant_n as_o if_o the_o unjust_a complaint_n of_o the_o puritan_n do_v satisfy_v the_o just_a exception_n of_o the_o protestant_n it_o be_v probable_a enough_o that_o he_o himself_o be_v one_o of_o our_o brother_n puritan_n in_o those_o day_n otherwise_o he_o can_v not_o well_o have_v talk_v so_o wild_o of_o peril_n of_o idolatry_n from_o surplesses_n his_o discourse_n be_v so_o sleight_n and_o impertinent_a that_o i_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v any_o answer_n but_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o reader_n to_o compare_v my_o vindication_n and_o reply_n with_o his_o rejoinder_n that_o they_o have_v add_v new_a essentials_n to_o faith_n be_v full_o evince_v against_o they_o in_o this_o treatise_n sect._n 1._o cap._n 11._o what_o our_o judgement_n be_v concern_v their_o idolatry_n he_o shall_v find_v exact_o set_v down_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o militier_fw-fr pa._n 133._o as_o for_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n which_o every_o bishop_n must_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n he_o may_v satisfy_v himself_o sect._n 1._o cap._n 5._o and_o see_v the_o from_o of_o it_o cap_n 7._o or_o if_o he_o desire_v to_o see_v a_o late_a form_n let_v he_o take_v this_o i_o henry_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n will_v be_v faithful_a and_o obedient_a to_o st._n peter_n from_o this_o hour_n as_o former_o 66._o and_o to_o the_o holy_a apostolic_a church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o my_o lord_n pope_n alexander_n the_o six_o and_o his_o successor_n i_o will_v give_v no_o counsel_n nor_o consent_n nor_o act_v any_o thing_n towards_o the_o loss_n of_o their_o life_n or_o member_n or_o liberty_n i_o will_v discover_v their_o counsel_n to_o no_o man_n to_o their_o prejudice_n which_o they_o have_v communicate_v to_o i_o by_o themselves_o or_o their_o messenger_n i_o will_v help_v they_o to_o retain_v and_o defend_v the_o roman_a papacy_n and_o the_o royalty_n of_o st._n peter_n save_v my_o order_n against_o all_o man_n i_o will_v entertein_a the_o pope_n legate_n honourable_o go_v and_o come_v and_o help_v they_o in_o their_o necessity_n i_o will_v visit_v the_o papal_a court_n every_o year_n if_o it_o be_v on_o this_o side_n the_o alps_n and_o every_o two_o year_n if_o it_o beyond_o the_o alps_n unless_o the_o pope_n dispense_v with_o i_o so_o help_v i_o god_n and_o the_o holy_a gospel_n what_o fidelity_n can_v a_o king_n expect_v from_o a_o subject_a who_o have_v take_v this_o oath_n if_o the_o pope_n please_v to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o he_o if_o the_o pope_n superiority_n above_o a_o general_n council_n be_v but_o hold_v as_o a_o indifferent_a opinion_n in_o their_o church_n and_o not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o he_o intimate_v yet_o it_o be_v such_o a_o opinion_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o contradict_v it_o be_v fere_n communis_fw-la it_o be_v almost_o the_o common_a opinion_n of_o all_o roman_a catholic_n if_o bellarmine_n say_v true_a and_o fere_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la almost_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n upon_o which_o modern_a pope_n and_o counsel_n be_v accord_v it_o be_v determine_v express_o in_o their_o last_o general_n council_n of_o lateran_n 11._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n alone_o have_v authority_n over_o all_o counsel_n be_v these_o all_o the_o ground_n he_o can_v find_v which_o entrench_v upon_o eternity_n and_o conscience_n he_o may_v have_v find_v more_o that_o by_o mean_n of_o papal_a abuse_n there_o describe_v hospitality_n be_v not_o keep_v the_o poor_a not_o sustain_v the_o word_n not_o preach_v 1245._o church_n not_o adorn_v the_o cure_n of_o soul_n neglect_v divine_a office_n not_o perform_v church_n ruin_v he_o may_v have_v find_v oath_n custom_n write_n grant_n statute_n right_n privilege_n to_o have_v be_v not_o only_o weaken_v but_o exinanit_v by_o the_o pope_n infamous_a messenger_n call_v non_fw-la obstance_n and_o all_o this_o attest_v by_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a and_o the_o whole_a commonwealth_n of_o england_n but_o it_o be_v no_o matter_n whether_o he_o take_v notice_n of_o it_o or_o not_o while_o he_o answer_v nothing_o he_o faith_n my_o second_o sort_n of_o ground_n be_v those_o which_o relate_v to_o temporal_a inconvenience_n and_o injury_n to_o the_o state_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o pope_n pretend_a encroachment_n which_o i_o huddle_n together_o in_o big_a term_n do_v i_o huddle_n they_o together_o nay_o i_o handle_v they_o distinct_o under_o three_o head_n or_o notion_n first_o the_o intolerable_a
representative_a church_n that_o be_v a_o general_n council_n or_o synod_n nor_o the_o executive_a headship_n of_o each_o patriarch_n in_o his_o patriarchate_n nor_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n headship_n of_o order_n among_o they_o and_o thus_o this_o great_a objection_n be_v vanish_v by_o this_o he_o may_v see_v that_o we_o have_v introduce_v no_o new_a form_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n into_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o preserve_v to_o every_o one_o his_o due_a right_n if_o he_o will_v accept_v of_o it_o and_o that_o we_o have_v the_o same_o dependence_n upon_o our_o ecclesiastical_a superior_n which_o we_o have_v evermore_o from_o the_o primitive_a time_n he_o charge_v we_o that_o we_o give_v no_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v which_o be_v a_o general_n council_n which_o not_o or_o who_o be_v to_o be_v call_v to_o a_o general_n council_n there_o be_v no_o need_n why_o we_o shall_v give_v any_o new_a rule_n who_o be_v ready_a to_o observe_v the_o old_a rule_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n general_n summon_v to_o all_o the_o patriarch_n for_o they_o and_o their_o clergy_n general_n admittance_n of_o all_o person_n capable_a to_o discuss_v free_o and_o to_o define_v free_o according_a to_o their_o distinct_a capacity_n and_o last_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o five_o protopatriarch_n and_o their_o clergy_n either_o in_o their_o person_n or_o by_o their_o suffrage_n or_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n the_o great_a part_n of_o they_o do_v make_v a_o general_n council_n while_o we_o set_v this_o rule_n before_o we_o as_o our_o pattern_n and_o swerve_v not_o from_o it_o but_o only_o in_o case_n of_o invincible_a necessity_n we_o may_v well_o hope_v that_o god_n who_o look_v upon_o his_o poor_a servant_n with_o all_o their_o prejudices_fw-la and_o expect_v no_o more_o of_o they_o then_o he_o have_v enable_v they_o to_o perform_v who_o have_v promise_v that_o where_o two_o or_o three_o be_v gather_v together_o in_o his_o name_n there_o will_v he_o be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o give_v his_o assistence_n and_o his_o blessing_n to_o such_o a_o council_n which_o be_v as_o general_n as_o may_v be_v although_o perhaps_o it_o be_v not_o so_o exact_o general_n as_o have_v be_v or_o may_v have_v be_v now_o if_o the_o christian_a empire_n have_v flourish_v still_o as_o it_o do_v ancient_o in_o sum_n i_o shall_v be_v ever_o ready_a to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o determinaation_n of_o a_o council_n so_o general_n as_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v have_v so_o it_o may_v be_v equal_a not_o have_v more_o judge_n of_o one_o country_n than_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o regulate_v by_o the_o equal_a vote_n of_o christian_a nation_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constance_n and_o basile_n and_o so_o as_o those_o nation_n which_o can_v in_o probability_n be_v personal_o present_a may_v be_v admit_v to_o send_v their_o vote_n and_o suffrage_n as_o they_o do_v of_o old_a and_o last_o so_o it_o may_v be_v free_a call_v in_o a_o free_a place_n whither_o all_o party_n may_v have_v secure_a access_n and_o liberty_n to_o propose_v free_o and_o define_v free_o according_a to_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o father_n without_o be_v stint_v or_o curb_v or_o overrule_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n send_v in_o a_o currier_n budget_n and_o for_o the_o last_o part_n of_o his_o exception_n that_o heretic_n shall_v not_o be_v admit_v i_o for_o my_o part_n shall_v ready_o consent_v provide_v that_o none_o be_v repute_v heretic_n but_o such_o as_o true_a general_n counsel_n have_v evident_o declare_v to_o be_v heretic_n or_o such_o as_o will_v not_o pronounce_v a_o anathema_n against_o all_o old_a heresy_n which_o have_v be_v condemn_v for_o heresy_n by_o undoubted_a general_n counsel_n but_o to_o imagine_v that_o all_o those_o shall_v be_v repute_v heretic_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v of_o heresy_n or_o schism_n by_o the_o roman_a court_n for_o their_o own_o interest_n that_o be_v four_o part_n of_o five_o of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v silly_a and_o senseless_a and_o argue_v nothing_o but_o their_o fear_n to_o come_v to_o a_o fair_a impartial_a trial_n and_o this_o be_v a_o full_a answer_n to_o that_o which_o he_o allege_v out_o of_o doctor_n hammond_n that_o general_n counsel_n be_v now_o moral_o impossible_a to_o be_v have_v the_o christian_a world_n be_v under_o so_o many_o empire_n and_o divide_v into_o so_o many_o communion_n it_o be_v not_o credible_a that_o the_o turk_n will_v send_v his_o subject_n that_o be_v four_o of_o the_o protopatriarch_n with_o their_o clergy_n to_o a_o general_n council_n or_o allow_v they_o to_o meet_v open_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o christendom_n in_o a_o general_n council_n it_o be_v so_o much_o against_o this_o own_o interest_n but_o yet_o this_o be_v no_o impediment_n why_o the_o patriarch_n may_v not_o deliver_v the_o sense_n and_o suffrage_n of_o their_o church_n by_o letter_n or_o by_o messenger_n and_o this_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v a_o council_n general_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a there_o be_v only_o five_o clergyman_n present_v out_o of_o the_o western_a church_n in_o the_o great_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n not_o so_o many_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n and_o ephesus_n none_o at_o all_o and_o yet_o have_v these_o four_o counsel_n evermore_o be_v esteem_v true_o general_n because_o the_o western_a church_n do_v declare_v their_o consent_n and_o concurrence_n then_o as_o there_o have_v be_v general_n oriental_a counsel_n without_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o a_o western_a bishop_n so_o there_o may_v be_v a_o occidental_a council_n without_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o one_o eastern_a bishop_n by_o the_o sole_a communication_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o their_o faith_n neither_o be_v such_o communication_n to_o be_v deem_v impossible_a consider_v what_o correspondence_n the_o muscovian_a church_n do_v hold_v long_o with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o abyssine_n have_v long_o hold_v and_o do_v still_o hold_v with_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n it_o be_v confess_v that_o there_o be_v too_o many_o different_a communion_n in_o europe_n it_o may_v be_v some_o more_o than_o there_o be_v any_o great_a cause_n for_o and_o perhaps_o different_a opinion_n where_o there_o be_v but_o one_o communion_n as_o difficult_a to_o be_v reconcile_v as_o different_a communion_n but_o many_o of_o these_o mushroom_n sect_n be_v like_o those_o inorganicall_a creature_n breed_v upon_o the_o bank_n of_o nilus_n which_o perish_v quick_o after_o they_o be_v breed_v for_o want_v of_o fit_a organ_n the_o more_o considerable_a party_n and_o the_o more_o capable_a of_o reason_n be_v not_o so_o many_o if_o these_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o free_a general_n council_n they_o will_v tow_v the_o other_o like_o lesser_a boat_n after_o they_o with_o ease_n no_o man_n will_v say_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n in_o point_n of_o government_n do_v consist_v only_o in_o their_o actual_a subordination_n to_o general_n counsel_n general_n counsel_n be_v extraordinary_a remedy_n proper_a for_o cure_v or_o compose_v new_a difference_n of_o great_a concernment_n in_o faith_n or_o discipline_n that_o be_v do_v general_n counsel_n may_v prove_v of_o more_o danger_n than_o use_n no_o healthful_a man_n delight_v in_o a_o continual_a course_n of_o physic_n but_o unity_n consist_v also_o and_o ordinary_o in_o conformity_n and_o submission_n to_o that_o discipline_n which_o general_n counsel_n have_v recommend_v to_o we_o either_o as_o the_o legacy_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o as_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n institute_v by_o they_o with_o the_o concurrence_n or_o confirmation_n of_o christian_a sovereign_n for_o the_o public_a good_a of_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o charge_v we_o that_o we_o have_v so_o form_v god_n church_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n leave_v to_o asssemble_v a_o general_n council_n have_v renounce_v his_o authority_n who_o proper_a office_n it_o be_v to_o call_v a_o general_n council_n his_o error_n seldom_o come_v single_a but_o common_o by_o cluster_n or_o at_o least_o by_o pair_n what_o height_n of_o confidence_n be_v it_o to_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o call_v general_n all_o counsel_n when_o all_o ingenuous_a man_n do_v acknowledge_v that_o all_o the_o first_o general_n counsel_n be_v ab_fw-la imperatoribus_fw-la indicta_fw-la call_v by_o emperor_n to_o which_o the_o pope_n friend_n add_v that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o advise_v and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o bellarmine_n give_v diverse_a reason_n why_o it_o can_v not_o be_v otherwise_o first_o because_o there_o be_v a_o law_n 14._o which_o do_v forbid_v frequent_a assembly_n for_o fear_n of_o sedition_n second_o
pass_v muster_n for_o once_o here_o be_v a_o contradiction_n deserve_v a_o bell_n and_o a_o babble_n catholic_n country_n do_v maintain_v their_o privilege_n inviolate_a by_o such_o mean_n at_o one_o time_n not_o at_o another_o in_o one_o place_v not_o in_o another_o in_o one_o degree_n not_o in_o another_o in_o one_o respect_v not_o in_o another_o the_o last_o mock_v contradiction_n be_v that_o i_o say_v the_o law_n which_o deny_v the_o pope_n all_o authority_n and_o be_v actual_o in_o force_n that_o be_v actual_o leave_v he_o none_o be_v not_o sufficient_a remedy_n against_o the_o abuse_n of_o that_o authority_n which_o have_v quite_o take_v they_o away_o this_o be_v not_o find_v of_o contradiction_n but_o make_v of_o they_o give_v he_o leave_v to_o use_v this_o id_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v and_o he_o will_v make_v a_o hundred_o contradiction_n in_o every_o page_n of_o the_o bible_n as_o here_o actual_o in_o force_n that_o be_v which_o actual_o leave_v the_o pope_n no_o authority_n or_o which_o have_v quite_o take_v his_o authority_n away_o if_o this_o id_fw-la est_fw-la that_o be_v be_v my_o than_o he_o may_v object_v the_o contradiction_n to_o i_o if_o it_o be_v not_o than_o he_o may_v keep_v the_o contradiction_n to_o himself_o such_o as_o it_o be_v he_o know_v and_o all_o the_o world_n know_v that_o a_o law_n be_v say_v to_o be_v actual_o in_o force_n while_o it_o be_v unrepealed_a in_o this_o sense_n i_o do_v and_o all_o man_n but_o himself_o do_v use_v that_o expression_n and_o here_o he_o commit_v a_o three_o gross_a fault_n against_o the_o rule_n of_o opposition_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v ever_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o same_o respect_n the_o law_n take_v away_o abuse_n as_o a_o rule_n but_o the_o magistrate_n by_o due_a execution_n as_o a_o artificer_n the_o law_n be_v sufficient_a when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o pen_v and_o promulge_v but_o the_o effect_n follow_v the_o due_a execution_n the_o not_o observe_v of_o this_o obvious_a and_o easy_a truth_n have_v make_v we_o all_o this_o stir_n about_o imaginary_a contradiction_n as_o i_o have_v show_v in_o my_o answer_n to_o his_o last_o paragraph_n which_o alone_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o all_o these_o pretend_a contradiction_n but_o whether_o it_o will_v be_v so_o actual_o in_o force_n to_o procure_v his_o assent_n be_v more_o than_o i_o know_v if_o it_o do_v not_o it_o detract_v nothing_o frem_a the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o answer_n go_v mr._n serjeant_n go_v bring_v we_o less_o wind_n and_o more_o weight_n saepius_fw-la in_o libro_fw-la memor_fw-la atur_fw-la perseus_n uno_fw-la quam_fw-la levis_fw-la in_o totâ_fw-la tharsus_n amazonide_v in_o the_o last_o paragraph_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o calumny_n against_o henry_n the_o eight_o which_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prove_v and_o if_o he_o be_v it_o neither_o concern_v we_o nor_o the_o question_n sect_n vii_o that_o the_o king_n and_o church_n of_o england_n proceed_v with_o due_a moderation_n this_o section_n do_v not_o much_o concern_v either_o we_o or_o the_o merit_n of_o the_o cause_n a_o reformation_n may_v be_v just_a and_o necessary_a although_o the_o reformer_n do_v exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o due_a moderation_n neither_o be_v we_o answerable_a for_o their_o excess_n further_o than_o we_o ourselves_o do_v maintain_v they_o i_o pass_v by_o his_o pleasant_a topick_n unsaluted_a as_o be_v impertinent_a and_o have_v nothing_o in_o it_o deserve_v the_o least_o stay_n of_o a_o serious_a reader_n i_o reckon_v this_o as_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o our_o moderation_n that_o we_o deny_v not_o to_o other_o churhe_n the_o true_a be_v of_o church_n nor_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n nor_o separate_v from_o church_n but_o from_o accidental_a error_n for_o all_o his_o scoff_a if_o their_o church_n will_v use_v the_o like_a moderation_n it_o will_v save_v the_o world_n a_o great_a deal_n of_o needless_a debate_n against_o that_o which_o i_o say_v he_o object_v thus_o now_o the_o matter_n of_o fact_n have_v evidence_v undeniable_o that_o they_o the_o protestant_n separate_v from_o those_o point_n which_o be_v the_o principle_n of_o unity_n both_o in_o faith_n and_o government_n he_o have_v bring_v his_o matter_n of_o fact_n and_o his_o principle_n of_o unity_n so_o often_o upon_o the_o stage_n already_o and_o they_o have_v be_v so_o often_o clear_o answer_v that_o i_o will_v not_o insist_v upon_o such_o a_o threedbare_a subject_n or_o trouble_v the_o reader_n with_o a_o irksome_a repetition_n we_o have_v see_v how_o far_o his_o principle_n of_o unity_n or_o his_o fundamental_a of_o fundamental_n be_v true_a and_o aught_o to_o be_v admit_v and_o in_o a_o right_a sense_n we_o adhere_v much_o more_o firm_o unto_o they_o than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n itself_o he_o procee_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n define_v that_o our_o church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n artic._n 19_o the_o word_n of_o the_o article_n be_v non_fw-la solum_fw-la quoad_fw-la agenda_fw-la &_o ceremoniarum_fw-la ritus_fw-la verum_fw-la etiam_fw-la in_o iis_fw-la quae_fw-la credenda_fw-la sunt_fw-la that_o be_v not_o only_o in_o practical_a observation_n and_o ceremonial_a rite_n but_o also_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v to_o use_v cardinal_n cajetans_n distinction_n not_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v de_fw-la fide_fw-la formaliter_fw-la in_o necessary_a fundamental_a article_n for_o we_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v still_o retain_v the_o essentials_n of_o faith_n but_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v fidei_fw-la materialiter_fw-la in_o inferior_a question_n which_o happen_v in_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v that_o be_v to_o say_v opinion_n wherein_o himself_o acknowledge_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n may_v err_v that_o this_o be_v the_o right_a sense_n of_o the_o article_n appear_v hence_o that_o the_o article_n do_v contradistinguish_v credenda_fw-la or_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v not_o to_o opinion_n but_o to_o agenda_fw-la thing_n to_o be_v practise_v he_o urge_v that_o we_o have_v declare_v four_o point_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o be_v vain_a fiction_n contradictory_n to_o god_n word_n artic._n 22._o that_o be_v to_o say_v their_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n indulgence_n their_o adoration_n of_o image_n and_o relic_n invocation_n of_o saint_n right_o four_o point_n of_o their_o new_a faith_n enjoin_v by_o pius_n the_o four_o but_o no_o article_n of_o the_o old_a apostolical_a faith_n and_o at_o the_o best_a only_a opinion_n yet_o neither_o do_v he_o cite_v our_o article_n right_a which_o do_v not_o define_v they_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n but_o only_o beside_o the_o scripture_n or_o not_o well_o ground_v upon_o any_o text_n of_o scripture_n he_o add_v the_o like_a character_n be_v give_v of_o another_o point_n art_n 28._o that_o be_v transubstantiation_n our_o high_a act_n of_o devotion_n art_n 31._o be_v style_v a_o blasphemous_a fiction_n and_o pernicious_a imposture_n that_o be_v the_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n concern_v transubstantiation_n what_o be_v our_o opinion_n i_o refer_v he_o to_o my_o answer_n to_o militier_n in_o the_o very_a beginning_n of_o it_o and_o concern_v their_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o the_o same_o answer_n pag._n 152._o edit_fw-la 2._o the_o true_a state_n of_o the_o controversy_n be_v not_o so_o clear_o understand_v at_o first_o on_o either_o side_n as_o it_o be_v now_o he_o can_v go_v one_o step_n further_o than_o we_o do_v in_o that_o cause_n without_o tumble_v into_o direct_a blasphemy_n it_o follow_v and_o art_n 33._o that_o those_o who_o be_v cut_v of_o from_o the_o church_n public_o shall_v be_v hold_v as_o heathen_n and_o publican_n well_o here_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o roman_a catholic_n and_o protestant_n and_o franciscus_n a_o sancta_fw-la clara_n in_o his_o paraphrastical_a exposition_n of_o the_o english_a article_n give_v this_o judgement_n of_o this_o article_n this_o article_n be_v catholic_n and_o agreeable_a as_o well_o to_o holy_a scripture_n as_o to_o antiquity_n then_o why_o do_v he_o snarl_v at_o this_o article_n which_o he_o can_v except_v against_o because_o he_o conceive_v that_o the_o article_n mean_v catholic_n or_o at_o least_o do_v include_v they_o judge_n reader_n what_o a_o spirit_n of_o contradiction_n d●th_v possess_v this_o man_n who_o when_o he_o be_v not_o able_a to_o pick_v any_o quarrel_n at_o the_o word_n of_o the_o article_n calumniate_v the_o meaning_n upon_o his_o own_o groundless_a suspicion_n but_o nothing_o be_v more_o common_a in_o the_o mouth_n of_o our_o preacher_n then_o to_o call_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n idolatrous_a superstitious_a blasphemous_a and_o to_o make_v up_o the_o measure_n of_o his_o forefather_n sin_n the_o bishop_n call_v here_o the_o two_o principle_n of_o
unity_n in_o faith_n and_o government_n error_n and_o falsehood_n if_o any_o of_o our_o preacher_n be_v exasperate_v 〈◊〉_d some_o such_o boutifeus_fw-la as_o himself_o have_v in_o thei●_n pulpit_n use_v any_o virulence_n or_o petulanc●_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v he_o mak●_n use_v of_o his_o stile_n against_o they_o who_o wil●_n furnish_v he_o with_o lettuce_n suitable_a to_o hi●_n lip_n what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n what_o be_v that_o to_o we_o quid_fw-la immerentes_fw-la hospites_fw-la vexat_fw-la canis_fw-la ignavus_fw-la adversus_fw-la lupos_fw-la let_v he_o but_o observe_v what_o liberty_n be_v himself_o take_v without_o any_o manner_n of_o provocation_n but_o as_o for_o myself_o he_o do_v i_o notorious_a wrong_n i_o do_v not_o mention_v any_o principle_n of_o unity_n in_o this_o place_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o they_o but_o that_o he_o must_v needs_o bring_v they_o in_o by_o head_n and_o shoulder_n in_o every_o paragraph_n all_o i_o say_v be_v this_o that_o we_o do_v not_o separate_v from_o other_o church_n but_o from_o their_o accidental_a error_n but_o some_o man_n be_v like_o nettle●_n touch_v they_o gentle_o and_o they_o sting_v you_o the_o first_o part_n of_o our_o moderation_n be_v not_o to_o censure_v other_o church_n for_o no_o church_n nor_o deny_v they_o possibility_n of_o salvation_n nor_o thrust_v they_o from_o our_o communion_n which_o i_o show_v in_o the_o example_n of_o st._n cyprian_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o he_o show_v the_o unlawfulnesse_n of_o communicate_v with_o idolater_n which_o be_v reconcile_a christ_n with_o antichrist_n be_v not_o this_o impertinent_a if_o he_o himself_o be_v judge_n i_o say_v it_o may_v be_v very_o lawful_a in_o some_o case_n to_o communicate_v with_o material_a idolater_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_n that_o be_v such_o as_o err_v through_o ignorance_n and_o frailty_n not_o obstinacy_n in_o religious_a duty_n and_o for_o proof_n hereof_o i_o produce_v the_o instance_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n communicate_v in_o some_o case_n with_o the_o heretical_a arr●ans_n and_o the_o schismatical_a novatian_o he_o demand_v first_o who_o forbid_v they_o to_o go_v visit_v the_o sick_a i_o add_v or_o pray_v with_o they_o also_o which_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o say_v there_o but_o because_o he_o fall_v with_o such_o violence_n upon_o the_o point_n i_o will_v now_o take_v the_o liberty_n to_o express_v myself_o more_o full_o first_o it_o be_v to_o be_v remember_v that_o i_o do_v speak_v only_o of_o material_a idolater_n heretic_n or_o schismatic_n not_o formal_a second_o of_o pious_a office_n not_o of_o idolatrous_a act_n nor_o any_o thing_n favour_v heresy_n or_o schism_n three_o i_o do_v new_a exclude_v case_n of_o scandal_n for_o just_a scandal_n may_v make_v that_o act_n to_o be_v unlawful_a which_o in_o itself_o be_v lawful_a four_o i_o except_o case_n of_o just_a obedience_n the_o prohibition_n of_o a_o lawful_a superior_a civil_a or_o ecclesiastical_a may_v make_v that_o act_n to_o be_v unlawful_a which_o be_v indifferent_a last_o i_o distinguish_v between_o person_n learned_a and_o ground_v in_o religion_n and_o person_n unlearned_a and_o ungrounded_a the_o former_a may_v and_o aught_o to_o communicate_v with_o idolater_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_n as_o far_o as_o they_o can_v with_o a_o good_a conscience_n to_o gain_v they_o to_o the_o truth_n the_o latter_a be_v oblige_v not_o to_o come_v over_o near_o to_o pitch_v lest_o they_o be_v defile_v the_o question_n be_v thus_o state_v i_o believe_v the_o main_a point_n have_v no_o great_a difficulty_n in_o it_o for_o they_o who_o be_v idolater_n heretic_n or_o schismatic_n only_o material_o not_o formal_o that_o be_v against_o their_o meaning_n resolution_n and_o intention_n be_v no_o idolater_n heretic_n or_o schismatic_n in_o the_o eye_n of_o god_n or_o discern_a man_n neither_o be_v they_o out_o of_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n or_o out_o of_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n as_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v most_o true_o 62._o we_o allow_v all_o those_o to_o have_v save_v faith_n to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n in_o way_n of_o salvation_n for_o so_o much_o as_o belong_v to_o faith_n who_o hold_v the_o fundamental_a point_n and_o invincible_o err_v in_o not_o fundamental_n but_o all_o idolater_n heretic_n and_o schismatic_n who_o be_v only_o material_o idolatrous_a heretical_a or_o schismatical_a do_v err_v invincible_o for_o if_o they_o err_v vincible_o than_o they_o be_v formal_a idolater_n heretic_n or_o schismatic_n thus_o much_o i_o lay_v down_o for_o certain_a the_o rest_n i_o only_o propose_v that_o although_o they_o be_v formal_a heretic_n or_o schismatic_n yet_o they_o be_v not_o altogether_o out_o of_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n but_o only_o in_o part_n exit_fw-la ea_fw-la parte_fw-la in_o tex●urae_fw-la compage_fw-la de●inentur_fw-la donat._n in_fw-la cae●era_fw-la scissi_fw-la sunt_fw-la so_o far_o they_o be_v weave_v into_o the_o web_n for_o the_o rest_n they_o be_v divide_v as_o st._n austin_n say_v and_o bellarm●ne_n out_o of_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v absolute_o in_o the_o church_n until_o they_o go_v out_o of_o it_o by_o obstinacy_n which_o they_o who_o eat_v only_o material_o heretic_n or_o schismatic_n do_v not_o and_o after_o they_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o obstinacy_n yet_o they_o be_v still_o in_o the_o church_n secundum_fw-la aliquid_fw-la non_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la 4._o not_o absolute_o but_o respective_o or_o in_o part_n and_o after_o he_o have_v vapour_a a_o long_a time_n to_o no_o purpose_n thus_o much_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o himself_o 585._o as_o long_o as_o schismatic_n be_v not_o harden_v into_o a_o obstinacy_n as_o no_o schismatic_n be_v who_o be_v only_o material_o schismatical_a there_o be_v a_o prudentiall_a latitude_n allow_v by_o the_o church_n delay_v her_o censure_n as_o long_o as_o she_o can_v possible_o without_o wrong_v her_o government_n as_o be_v the_o facto_fw-la practise_v in_o england_n till_o the_o 10_o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n this_o be_v full_a as_o much_o as_o i_o say_v that_o it_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o communicate_v in_o some_o case_n with_o material_a schismatic_n and_o whatsoever_o i_o say_v be_v rather_o to_o make_v a_o charitable_a construction_n of_o their_o material_a idolatry_n than_o out_o of_o fear_n that_o they_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o attaint_v we_o of_o any_o schism_n either_o material_a or_o formal_a if_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n of_o reality_n to_o object_n against_o we_o he_o will_v be_v ashamed_a to_o intimate_v our_o inclination_n to_o favour_n arianism_n which_o he_o himself_o know_v our_o soul_n abhor_v and_o which_o he_o himself_o know_v to_o be_v express_o condemn_v in_o the_o second_o article_n of_o our_o church_n he_o may_v find_v my_o instance_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n communicate_v with_o the_o arrian_n and_o novatian_o in_o church_n office_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n preface_n pa._n 36_o if_o he_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o say_v to_o they_o neither_o be_v it_o at_o the_o first_o sprout_v of_o the_o arrian_n heresy_n but_o after_o they_o have_v form_v several_a doxology_n to_o themselves_o nor_o at_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o novatian_a schism_n but_o towards_o the_o conclusion_n of_o it_o i_o cite_v st._n cyprian_n for_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o to_o show_v that_o his_o moderation_n in_o abstain_v from_o censure_v do_v preserve_v he_o free_a from_o schism_n although_o he_o be_v in_o a_o error_n when_o optatus_n call_v the_o donatists'_v his_o brethren_n he_o do_v not_o mean_v his_o brethren_n in_o adam_n but_o his_o brethren_n in_o christ_n and_o wonder_n why_o his_o brother_n parmenian_n a_o donatist_n will_v rank_n himself_o with_o heretiek_n who_o be_v falsifier_n of_o the_o creed_n if_o this_o be_v the_o infallible_a mark_n of_o a_o heretic_n let_v pius_fw-la quartus_fw-la and_o his_o party_n look_v to_o themselves_o i_o dislike_v a_o position_n of_o he_o which_o the_o reader_n shall_v have_v in_o his_o own_o word_n i_o can_v say_v my_o religion_n be_v true_a but_o i_o must_v say_v the_o opposite_a be_v false_a i_o be_v good_a but_o i_o must_v say_v the_o opposite_a be_v naught_o my_o necessary_a but_o i_o must_v judge_v that_o which_o be_v inconsistent_a carry_v to_o damnation_n therefore_o who_o do_v not_o censure_v a_o contrary_a religion_n hold_v not_o his_o own_o certain_a that_o be_v have_v none_o upon_o this_o he_o pursue_v i_o with_o a_o full_a cry_v that_o the_o common_a principle_n of_o nature_n if_o any_o thing_n be_v true_a the_o opposite_a be_v false_a or_o a_o thing_n can_v both_o be_v and_o not_o be_v at_o once_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o bishop_n stay_v mr._n serjeant_n be_v not_o so_o fierce_a the_o bishop_n know_v as_o well_o as_o yourself_o that_o the_o disjunction_n of_o contradictory_n be_v eternal_a and_o
to_o pervert_v as_o many_o as_o they_o can_v not_o to_o sow_v good_a seed_n in_o the_o lord_n field_n but_o to_o superseminare_fw-la or_o sow_v tare_n above_o the_o wheat_n we_o shall_v thank_v they_o more_o to_o stay_v at_o home_n then_o to_o compass_v sea_n and_o land_n to_o gain_v proselyte_n as_o the_o pharisee_n do_v and_o make_v they_o twofold_a more_o the_o child_n of_o hell_n than_o themselves_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o solemn_a custom_n of_o their_o church_n every_o good_a friday_n let_v it_o be_v so_o but_o they_o have_v not_o the_o same_o incentive_a and_o provocation_n which_o we_o have_v we_o do_v not_o curse_v and_o anathematise_v they_o the_o day_n before_o as_o they_o do_v we_o this_o advantage_n we_o have_v over_o they_o that_o we_o render_v blessing_n for_o curse_v which_o they_o do_v not_o he_o add_v that_o they_o can_v be_v understand_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o heretic_n first_o because_o we_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o therefore_o not_o heretical_a second_o they_o be_v of_o christ_n flock_n already_o and_o therefore_o not_o reductble_a to_o his_o flock_n to_o the_o first_o ●_o answer_v that_o a_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v only_o material_o heretical_a not_o formal_o do_v still_o continue_v a_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n the_o bishop_n of_o chalcedon_n understand_v these_o thing_n much_o better_o than_o himself_o this_o be_v confess_v by_o he_o in_o the_o place_n former_o allege_v 4._o a_o particular_a church_n may_v be_v real_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a and_o yet_o moral_o a_o true_a particular_a church_n because_o she_o be_v invincible_o ignorant_a of_o her_o heresy_n or_o schism_n we_o agree_v with_o he_o whole_o in_o the_o sense_n only_o we_o differ_v in_o the_o expression_n what_o he_o call_v real_o heretical_a we_o style_v material_o heretical_a and_o what_o he_o call_v moral_o a_o true_a church_n we_o use_v to_o style_v metaphysical_o a_o true_a church_n that_o be_v by_o truth_n of_o entity_n not_o of_o morality_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n be_v take_v various_o sometime_o more_o large_o sometime_o more_o strict_o more_o large_o for_o all_o those_o that_o be_v in_o domo_fw-la by_o outward_a profession_n more_o strict_o for_o those_o who_o be_v exit_fw-la domo_fw-la so_o in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v also_o of_o the_o church_n by_o inward_a sanctification_n and_o our_o collect_n have_v reference_n to_o this_o late_a acception_n of_o this_o word_n flock_n so_o fetch_v they_o home_o bless_v lord_n to_o thy_o floek_n that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v he_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o our_o church_n have_v change_v these_o word_n in_o the_o missal_n recall_v they_o to_o our_o holy_a mother_n the_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n into_o this_o dwindle_n pule_a puritanical_a expression_n of_o one_o floek_a and_o one_o fold_v under_o one_o shepheard_n whether_o it_o be_v because_o he_o have_v a_o pick_n against_o scripture_n phrase_n as_o sound_v too_o preacherlike_a or_o rather_o because_o our_o church_n do_v presume_v to_o name_v the_o right_a shepherd_n jesus_n christ_n and_o not_o leave_v it_o to_o their_o gloss_n to_o entitle_v the_o pope_n to_o that_o office_n but_o certain_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v not_o formidable_a at_o all_o to_o any_o genuine_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n i_o do_v ready_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o each_o orthodox_n church_n to_o excommunicate_v formal_a heretic_n and_o they_o who_o swerve_v from_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o this_o do_v not_o oblige_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o excommunicate_v all_o material_a heretic_n who_o follow_v the_o dictate_v of_o their_o conscience_n in_o inferior_a question_n which_o be_v not_o essentials_n of_o faith_n and_o do_v hold_v the_o truth_n implicit_o in_o the_o preparation_n of_o their_o mind_n neither_o do_v i_o ever_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v ever_o excommunicate_a papist_n in_o gross_a qua_fw-la tale_n but_o only_o some_o particular_a papist_n who_o be_v either_o convict_v of_o other_o crime_n or_o find_v guilty_a of_o contumacy_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n will_v use_v the_o same_o moderation_n and_o remember_v how_o ireneus_fw-la reprove_v pope_n victor_n that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v right_o to_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n 24._o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a churehe_n of_o god_n this_o be_v that_o great_a nonsense_n which_o this_o egregious_a prevaricatour_n have_v find_v in_o our_o collect_n that_o the_o english_a church_n can_v reconcile_v her_o doctrine_n and_o her_o practice_n together_o let_v he_o not_o trouble_v his_o head_n with_o that_o but_o rather_o how_o to_o recoucile_v himself_o with_o his_o own_o church_n he_o will_v have_v prayer_n to_o be_v only_a word_n no_o work_n but_o his_o church_n make_v prayer_n fast_v and_o alm_n 590_o to_o be_v three_o satisfactory_a work_n my_o three_o proof_n of_o our_o moderation_n be_v that_o we_o do_v not_o challenge_v a_o new_a church_n a_o new_a religion_n or_o new_a holy_a order_n but_o derive_v our_o church_n our_o religion_n our_o holy_a order_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n we_o obtrude_v no_o innovation_n upon_o other_o all_o this_o be_v quite_o omit_v by_o this_o great_a pretender_n to_o sincerity_n and_o yet_o he_o know_v or_o may_v know_v that_o there_o have_v be_v pretend_a reformer_n who_o have_v commit_v all_o these_o excess_n but_o he_o catch_v hold_v of_o two_o word_n of_o my_o defence_n that_o we_o have_v add_v no_o thing_n i_o wish_v they_o can_v say_v as_o much_o nor_o take_v away_o any_o thing_n but_o error_n to_o the_o former_a part_n he_o except_v that_o he_o who_o positive_o deny_v ever_o add_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o he_o take_v away_o he_o that_o make_v it_o a_o article_n there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o mass_n no_o prayer_n to_o saint_n have_v as_o many_o article_n as_o he_o who_o hold_v the_o contrary_a i_o have_v take_v away_o this_o answer_n before_o and_o demonstrate_v that_o no_o negative_a can_v be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n or_o necessary_a medium_fw-la of_o salvation_n because_o it_o have_v no_o entity_n that_o there_o be_v a_o hundred_o great_a dispute_n and_o contradiction_n among_o themselves_o in_o theological_a question_n or_o in_o these_o thing_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la fide●_n materialiter_fw-la than_o those_o three_o be_v between_o we_o and_o they_o yet_o they_o dare_v not_o say_v that_o either_o the_o affirmative_n or_o negative_n be_v article_n of_o faith_n the_o christian_a church_n for_o fifteen_o hundred_o year_n know_v never_o more_o than_o 12._o old_a article_n of_o faith_n until_o pius_n the_o four_o add_v twelve_o new_a article_n and_o now_o this_o young_a pythagoras_n will_v make_v we_o more_o than_o 1200._o article_n affirmative_a article_n and_o negative_a article_n fundamental_a article_n and_o superstructive_a article_n every_o theological_a truth_n shall_v either_o be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n or_o a_o indifferent_a and_o unconcern_v opinion_n he_o say_v our_o 22._o article_n define_v the_o negative_a to_o purgatory_n yet_o i_o like_v a_o ill_a tutor_v child_n tell_v my_o old_a crazy_a mother_n the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o she_o lie_v 593._o i_o hope_v by_o this_o time_n the_o reader_n know_v sufficient_o that_o his_o pen_n be_v no_o slander_n if_o the_o church_n of_o england_n do_v ever_o ill_o it_o be_v when_o she_o beget_v he_o neither_o do_v i_o tell_v the_o church_n of_o england_n she_o lie_v nor_o dissent_v in_o the_o least_o from_o the_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n neither_o do_v the_o church_n of_o england_n define_v any_o of_o these_o question_n as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v either_o necessitate_v med●i_fw-la or_o necessitate_v praecepti_fw-la which_o be_v much_o less_o but_o only_o bind_v her_o son_n for_o peace_n sake_n not_o to_o oppose_v they_o but_o he_o himself_o can_v hardly_o be_v excuse_v from_o lie_v where_o he_o tell_v we_o the_o good_a simple_a minister_n do_v swear_v to_o maintain_v they_o perhaps_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o simple_a minister_n do_v he_o ever_o swear_v to_o maintain_v they_o do_v he_o ever_o know_v any_o man_n who_o do_v swear_v to_o maintain_v they_o for_o he_o to_o urge_v such_o falsehood_n after_o they_o have_v be_v so_o often_o detect_v be_v double_a effronterie_n periisse_fw-la puto_fw-la ●ui_fw-la pudor_fw-la periit_fw-la he_o infer_v further_a by_o the_o bishop_n logic_n these_o proposition_n that_o there_o be_v not_o two_o god_n that_o the_o devil_n shall_v not_o be_v save_v nor_o the_o saint_n in_o heaven_n damn_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n but_o through_o christ_n must_v cease_v to_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o
opinion_n of_o the_o romanist_n and_o yet_o some_o of_o my_o instance_n be_v in_o cardinal_n richlieus_n day_n and_o since_o very_o late_o add_v that_o i_o contradict_v myself_o yet_o once_o more_o affirm_v that_o i_o hope_v those_o seditious_a doctrine_n at_o this_o day_n be_v almost_o bury_v what_o satisfaction_n do_v this_o man_n owe_v to_o his_o reader_n to_o conceal_v from_o he_o all_o the_o precedent_n law_n sentence_n of_o emperor_n king_n commonwealth_n university_n and_o to_o present_v he_o nothing_o but_o such_o foppery_n as_o these_o i_o will_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o spend_v any_o time_n about_o they_o but_o only_o give_v the_o reader_n a_o ariadne_n clew_n to_o guide_v he_o out_o of_o this_o imaginary_a maze_n i_o have_v show_v he_o what_o these_o seditious_a opinion_n be_v where_o they_o be_v hatch_v and_o when_o namely_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elisabeths_n reign_n 4._o and_o though_o some_o few_o of_o my_o instance_n be_v after_o that_o time_n yet_o the_o main_a body_n of_o they_o be_v much_o more_o ancient_a as_o in_o the_o empire_n from_o charles_n the_o great_a to_o charles_n the_o five_o and_o in_o france_n from_o carolus_n calvus_n downward_o so_o i_o may_v true_o say_v that_o the_o instance_n cite_v by_o i_o be_v long_o before_o those_o disloyal_a opinion_n be_v hatch_v and_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o so_o late_o hatch_v but_o i_o hope_v they_o be_v almost_o bury_v at_o this_o day_n a_o man_n will_v have_v think_v that_o i_o deserve_v thanks_n for_o my_o charity_n not_o to_o be_v traduce_v but_o it_o be_v all_o one_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_v who_o it_o be_v that_o trip_v up_o his_o own_o heel_n when_o i_o say_v it_o be_v great_a pity_n that_o he_o be_v not_o one_o of_o christ_n counsellor_n when_o he_o form_v his_o church_n it_o do_v not_o suppose_v that_o christ_n have_v any_o counsellor_n but_o to_o tax_v he_o who_o take_v upon_o he_o so_o magisterial_o to_o dictate_v what_o be_v necessary_a then_o for_o christ_n to_o do_v this_o i_o call_v sauciness_n and_o just_o good_a christian_n as_o i_o tell_v he_o former_o ought_v to_o argue_v thus_o christ_n form_v his_o church_n thus_o therefore_o this_o be_v the_o best_a form_n not_o thus_o this_o be_v the_o best_a form_n therefore_o christ_n form_v it_o after_o this_o manner_n the_o only_a reason_n why_o i_o cite_v that_o text_n of_o st._n paul_n 4._o one_o body_n one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n and_o father_n of_o all_o be_v this_o that_o st._n paul_n reckon_v up_o seven_o bond_n of_o unity_n shall_v omit_v this_o which_o mr._n sergeant_n make_v to_o be_v the_o only_a bond_n of_o unity_n namely_o unus_fw-la papa_n one_o pope_n or_o one_o bishop_n of_o rome_n christ_n see_v it_o necessary_a to_o make_v a_o bond_n of_o unity_n between_o the_o church_n and_o that_o for_o this_o reason_n he_o give_v the_o principality_n to_o st_n peter_n and_o consequent_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n all_o this_o he_o suppose_v on_o his_o own_o head_n but_o do_v not_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v any_o thing_n if_o st._n paul_n have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n that_o be_v the_o proper_a place_n to_o have_v record_v it_o and_o doubtless_o he_o will_v not_o have_v omit_v it_o this_o argument_n which_o only_o i_o use_v he_o do_v not_o touch_v but_o fanci_v that_o i_o make_v these_o seven_o bond_n of_o unity_n or_o obligation_n to_o unity_n or_o mean_n of_o unity_n to_o be_v seven_o mark_n of_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n which_o i_o never_o dream_v of_o and_o therefore_o i_o pass_v it_o by_o as_o impertinent_a only_o add_v that_o our_o ground_n for_o unity_n of_o faith_n be_v our_o creed_n and_o for_o unity_n of_o government_n the_o very_a same_o form_n of_o discipline_n which_o be_v use_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o be_v derive_v from_o they_o to_o we_o when_o i_o wish_v that_o he_o have_v express_v himself_o more_o clear_o whether_o he_o be_v for_o a_o beginning_n of_o order_n and_o unity_n or_o for_o a_o single_a head_n of_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n i_o speak_v of_o st._n peter_n of_o who_o the_o case_n be_v clear_a that_o he_o have_v no_o more_o power_n over_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n than_o they_o have_v over_o he_o and_o that_o the_o supremacy_n of_o power_n rest_v in_o the_o apostolical_a college_n all_o that_o st._n pe●er_n have_v be_v a_o beginning_n of_o unity_n what_o st._n peter_n have_v the_o pope_n may_v pretend_v a_o claim_n to_o what_o he_o have_v not_o the_o pope_n have_v no_o pretence_n for_o neither_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n nor_o any_o other_o ancient_a bishop_n nor_o yet_o st._n gregory_n himself_o do_v ever_o dream_v of_o such_o a_o singular_a headship_n of_o power_n as_o he_o mention_n that_o be_v that_o no_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v power_n but_o he_o although_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o their_o adherent_n come_v very_o near_o it_o at_o this_o day_n derive_v all_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n of_o all_o other_o bishop_n from_o the_o pope_n that_o power_n which_o john_n affect_v and_o st._n gregory_n impugn_a then_o and_o we_o impugn_v now_o be_v the_o power_n of_o universal_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n if_o that_o be_v a_o heresy_n in_o he_o as_o he_o confess_v let_v they_o look_v to_o themselves_o neither_o be_v the_o bishop_n primacy_n of_o order_n so_o dry_a a_o primacy_n as_o he_o pretend_v nor_o destitute_a of_o those_o privilege_n which_o belong_v to_o a_o primate_n of_o order_n by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n to_o call_v assembly_n sub_fw-la paena_fw-la spirituali_fw-la or_o to_o intimate_v the_o necessity_n of_o call_v they_o to_o propose_v doubt_n to_o receive_v vote_n and_o to_o execute_v so_o far_o as_o he_o be_v trust_v by_o the_o church_n this_o be_v the_o single_a power_n of_o a_o primate_n of_o order_n but_o beside_o this_o he_o have_v also_o a_o conjoint_v power_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n what_o he_o say_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o general_n counsel_n i_o have_v answer_v former_o he_o ask_v i_o what_o other_o successor_n st._n peter_n have_v who_o can_v pretend_v to_o a_o headship_n of_o order_n except_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o answer_v that_o i_o do_v not_o speak_v of_o what_o st._n peter_n have_v but_o what_o he_o may_v have_v have_v or_o may_v have_v whensoever_o the_o representative_a church_n that_o be_v a_o general_n council_n shall_v give_v the_o primacy_n of_o order_n to_o another_o bishop_n since_o he_o be_v so_o great_a a_o friend_n to_o the_o school_n of_o sorbon_n he_o can_v not_o well_o be_v ignorant_a what_o their_o learned_a chancellor_n have_v write_v express_o upon_o this_o subject_a in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr a●seribilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la not_o the_o take_v away_o of_o the_o papacy_n but_o removal_n of_o it_o and_o what_o bellarmine_n confess_v that_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n do_v prove_v that_o the_o apostolical_a see_v be_v so_o fix_v to_o rome_n that_o it_o can_v be_v remove_v he_o urge_v that_o then_o the_o church_n shall_v remain_v without_o this_o principality_n at_o the_o death_n of_o every_o pope_n until_o all_o the_o church_n in_o japan_n china_n and_o india_n have_v give_v their_o consent_n yet_o i_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v of_o perpetual_a necessity_n first_o he_o do_v i_o wrong_n i_o do_v not_o say_v positive_o that_o it_o be_v of_o perpetual_a necessity_n but_o that_o i_o like_v it_o well_o enough_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v of_o perpetual_a necessity_n seem_v strong_o to_o imply_v the_o necessity_n of_o the_o thing_n second_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o expect_v such_o far_o fetch_v suffrage_n so_o long_o as_o the_o primacy_n may_v remain_v fix_v where_o it_o be_v unless_o a_o general_n council_n or_o one_o as_o general_n as_o may_v be_v think_v fit_a to_o remove_v it_o and_o if_o a_o general_n council_n remove_v it_o it_o will_v take_v order_n for_o the_o future_a succession_n and_o this_o same_o reason_n do_v clear_o take_v away_o his_o answer_n to_o my_o instance_n that_o as_o the_o die_v of_o such_o a_o bishop_n lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n do_v not_o perpetuate_v the_o chancellourship_n to_o that_o bishopric_n because_o there_o be_v a_o sovereign_a prince_n to_o elect_v another_o so_o the_o die_a of_o st._n peter_n bishop_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o perpetuate_v the_o primacy_n to_o that_o bishopric_n because_o a_o general_n council_n when_o it_o be_v in_o be_v have_v power_n to_o transfer_v it_o to_o another_o see_v if_o they_o find_v it_o expedient_a for_o the_o public_a good_a the_o bishop_n know_v right_a well_o that_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v both_o his_o spouse_n and_o his_o family_n both_o the_o governess_n and_o the_o
that_o authority_n which_o he_o do_v challenge_v and_o not_o wave_v the_o extent_n as_o a_o thing_n indifferent_a if_o he_o challenge_v it_o out_o of_o prudentiall_a reason_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v consider_v whether_o the_o hope_n or_o the_o hazard_n the_o advantage_n or_o disadvantage_n the_o convenience_n or_o inconvenience_n of_o such_o a_o form_n of_o government_n particular_o circumstantiate_v do_v over_o balance_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o and_o the_o sure_a trial_n of_o this_o be_v by_o experience_n it_o will_v trouble_v he_o to_o find_v so_o many_o advantage_n which_o the_o church_n and_o kingdom_n of_o england_n have_v receive_v from_o papal_a jurisdiction_n i_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o key_n of_o order_n as_o may_v overweigh_v all_o those_o disadvantage_n which_o they_o have_v sustain_v by_o the_o extortion_n and_o usurpation_n and_o malignant_a influence_n of_o the_o papacy_n if_o he_o attribute_v no_o more_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n than_o all_o roman_a catholic_n universal_o do_v approve_v which_o be_v the_o only_a rule_n that_o he_o give_v we_o to_o know_v what_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o papal_a authority_n he_o need_v not_o be_v so_o impetuous_a this_o question_n be_v near_o a_o end_n he_o ask_v whether_o we_o and_o the_o eastern_a southern_a and_o northern_a christian_n be_v under_o the_o government_n of_o patriarch_n or_o any_o other_o common_a government_n i_o answer_v we_o and_o they_o be_v under_o the_o same_o common_a government_n which_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v under_o from_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n long_o before_o there_o be_v any_o general_n counsel_n that_o be_v the_o government_n of_o bishop_n under_o primate_fw-la or_o patriarch_n for_o as_o i_o have_v say_v former_o a_o protarch_n and_o a_o patriarch_n in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v both_o one_o we_o have_v as_o much_o opportunity_n to_o convocate_v synod_n as_o they_o have_v then_o before_o there_o be_v christian_a emperor_n and_o more_o yet_o by_o such_o counsel_n as_o they_o can_v congregate_v though_o they_o be_v not_o general_n they_o govern_v the_o church_n if_o there_o be_v not_o that_o free_a communication_n of_o one_o church_n with_o another_o that_o be_v then_o either_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a distance_n or_o our_o mutual_a misunderstanding_n one_o of_o another_o for_o want_v of_o the_o old_a canonical_a epistle_n or_o literae_fw-la formatae_fw-la the_o more_o be_v the_o pity_n we_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o and_o ready_a to_o contribute_v our_o uttermost_a endeavour_n to_o the_o remedy_n of_o it_o with_o these_o western_a church_n which_o have_v shake_v of_o the_o roman_a y●ke_n we_o have_v much_o more_o communion_n by_o synod_n by_o letter_n by_o publish_v our_o confession_n and_o we_o may_v just_o hope_v for_o a_o much_o near_a union_n yet_o both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n if_o god_n will_v be_v gracious_o please_v to_o restore_v a_o happy_a peace_n that_o we_o have_v it_o not_o already_o in_o so_o large_a a_o measure_n as_o we_o may_v be_v their_o only_a fault_n who_o will_v not_o give_v way_n to_o a_o vniform_a reformation_n sometime_o they_o accuse_v we_o for_o have_v too_o much_o communion_n with_o they_o at_o other_o time_n they_o will_v not_o grant_v we_o to_o have_v any_o at_o all_o concern_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a church_n which_o submit_v to_o the_o papacy_n we_o have_v the_o same_o rule_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n which_o they_o have_v we_o have_v the_o same_o that_o they_o have_v save_v their_o additionall_n error_n we_o have_v break_v no_o bond_n of_o unity_n either_o in_o faith_n or_o discipline_n we_o have_v renounce_v no_o just_a authority_n either_o divine_a or_o humane_a we_o adhere_v to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o the_o ancient_a and_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n into_o which_o alone_o all_o christian_n that_o ever_o be_v have_v be_v baptize_v and_o we_o renounce_v the_o upstart_n additional_a article_n of_o pius_n the_o four_o we_o be_v willing_a for_o peace_n sake_n to_o give_v the_o pope_n the_o same_o primacy_n of_o order_n which_o st._n peter_n have_v above_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n but_o the_o supremacy_n of_o power_n be_v not_o in_o st._n peter_n but_o in_o the_o apostolical_a college_n neither_o be_v now_o in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o in_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n he_o say_v we_o maintain_v a_o large_a brotherhood_n than_o they_o but_o never_o go_v about_o to_o show_v any_o visible_a tie_n of_o government_n we_o show_v they_o the_o same_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n of_o our_o christianity_n that_o be_v the_o same_o creed_n and_o the_o same_o discipline_n or_o government_n that_o be_v the_o same_o colour_n derive_v down_o from_o the_o apostle_n by_o a_o uninterrupted_a succession_n the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o the_o same_o discipline_n be_v tie_n enough_o to_o take_v a_o exact_a view_n it_o be_v necessary_a the_o organ_n shall_v be_v perfect_a the_o medium_fw-la fit_a and_o the_o distance_n convenient_a if_o any_o one_o of_o these_o be_v defective_a in_o mr._n ross_v view_n he_o may_v well_o mistake_v but_o i_o may_v not_o do_v he_o that_o wrong_v to_o trust_v your_o testimony_n without_o cite_v his_o word_n he_o urge_v if_o christ_n have_v leave_v any_o unity_n of_o government_n in_o his_o church_n and_o command_v it_o to_o be_v keep_v and_o we_o have_v take_v a_o course_n to_o leave_v no_o such_o unity_n than_o we_o have_v rebel_v against_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o false_o pretend_v to_o have_v he_o our_o spiritual_a head_n i_o admit_v this_o now_o let_v he_o assume_v but_o you_o protestant_n have_v take_v a_o course_n to_o leave_v no_o unity_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n which_o christ_n leave_v and_o command_v to_o be_v keep_v i_o deny_v his_o assumption_n altogether_o and_o he_o say_v not_o one_o word_n to_o prove_v it_o this_o be_v his_o enthymematicall_a manner_n of_o argue_v he_o procee_v that_o to_o have_v a_o general_n council_n for_o a_o ecclesiastical_a head_n be_v to_o confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o ordinary_a unity_n of_o government_n in_o god_n church_n but_o extraordinary_a only_a when_o a_o council_n sit_v i_o deny_v this_o proposition_n altogether_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v evident_a because_o beside_o a_o general_n council_n which_o sit_v but_o rare_o neither_o be_v it_o needful_a that_o it_o shall_v sit_v often_o nisi_fw-la dignus_fw-la vindice_n nodus_fw-la inciderit_fw-la there_o be_v particular_a counsel_n which_o in_o lesser_a exigent_n serve_v the_o turn_n as_o well_o as_o general_n there_o be_v patriarch_n and_o bishop_n which_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_a in_o a_o aristocracy_n it_o be_v not_o necessary_a that_o the_o governor_n shall_v be_v evermore_o actual_o assemble_v in_o the_o first_o three_o hundred_o year_n there_o be_v no_o general_n counsel_n hold_v there_o be_v less_o hope_n of_o ever_o hold_v they_o then_o then_o now_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o ordinary_a unity_n of_o government_n in_o god_n ch●rch_n in_o those_o day_n for_o which_o they_o be_v not_o indebt_v at_o all_o to_o any_o visible_a monarch_n b●t_o when_o a_o general_n council_n do_v sit_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a power_n rest_v in_o it_o he_o wonder_v why_o i_o shall_v make_v the_o king_n only_o a_o political_a head_n contrary_a to_o our_o common_a assertion_n it_o seem_v that_o though_o he_o have_v be_v breed_v among_o we_o yet_o he_o have_v not_o be_v much_o verse_v in_o our_o author_n no_o man_n that_o ever_o understand_v himself_o make_v he_o otherwise_o yet_o this_o political_a head_n have_v a_o great_a influence_n upon_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n and_o person_n in_o the_o external_a regiment_n of_o the_o church_n he_o demand_v be_v there_o any_o orderly_a common_a tie_n of_o government_n oblige_v this_o head_n to_o correspond_v with_o the_o other_o head_n if_o not_o where_o be_v the_o unity_n i_o answer_v yes_o the_o direction_n of_o his_o spiritual_a guide_n that_o be_v his_o bishop_n and_o synod_n if_o this_o method_n be_v so_o great_a a_o rarity_n with_o he_o it_o be_v his_o own_o fault_n he_o have_v say_v more_o proper_o to_o correspond_v with_o the_o other_o head_n then_o head_n he_o say_v it_o be_v false_a to_o say_v that_o they_o have_v sometime_o two_o or_o three_o head_n since_o there_o can_v be_v but_o one_o true_a or_o right_o choose_v pope_n true_o but_o the_o election_n may_v be_v uncertain_a that_o no_o man_n live_a can_v know_v the_o true_a pope_n so_o whether_o there_o be_v three_o pope_n or_o one_o pope_n and_o two_o pretender_n yet_o if_o the_o right_a pope_n can_v be_v make_v appear_v it_o be_v all_o one_o relative_o to_o the_o church_n if_o the_o trumpet_n give_v a_o uncertain_a sound_n who_o shall_v prepare_v himself_o to_o the_o battle_n he_o tell_v we_o further_o that_o when_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v vacant_a the_o headship_n be_v
cite_v the_o word_n of_o st._n bernard_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o lord_n or_o master_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n a_o mother_n of_o other_o church_n not_o a_o lady_n or_o mistress_n he_o distinguish_v between_o dominam_fw-la and_o magistram_fw-la a_o imperious_a proud_a lady_n mistress_n and_o a_o schoolmistress_n or_o teacheresse_n add_v that_o they_o use_v the_o word_n magistram_fw-la in_o the_o latter_a sense_n so_o they_o say_v no_o more_o than_o we_o we_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v a_o teacheresse_n and_o the_o pope_n a_o teacher_n as_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a church_n and_o he_o a_o apostolical_a bishop_n but_o all_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o other_o word_n dominum_fw-la which_o the_o pope_n take_v to_o himself_o as_o well_o as_o magistrum_fw-la as_o we_o have_v see_v in_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o he_o make_v all_o bishop_n to_o swear_v neither_o do_v st._n bernard_n oppose_v proud_a imperious_a dominion_n to_o gentle_a dominion_n but_o he_o contradistinguish_v dominion_n to_o no_o dominion_n and_o thyself_o not_o a_o lord_n of_o other_o bishop_n but_o one_o of_o they_o not_o a_o lord_n of_o other_o bishop_n say_v st._n bernard_n a_o lord_n of_o other_o bishop_n say_v the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n i_o will_v be_v faithful_a to_o our_o lord_n pope_n alexander_n he_o urge_v that_o the_o bishop_n have_v bring_v a_o testimony_n which_o assert_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o other_o church_n and_o so_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n too_o st._n bernard_n assert_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o other_o church_n so_o do_v the_o bishop_n but_o not_o to_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o other_o church_n no_o more_o do_v the_o bishop_n particular_o not_o of_o the_o church_n of_o britain_n which_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o so_o can_v not_o be_v her_o daughter_n let_v they_o prove_v their_o right_n that_o they_o be_v our_o mother_n and_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o do_v our_o filial_a duty_n save_v always_o that_o high_a duty_n which_o we_o owe_v to_o our_o mother_n paramount_n the_o universal_a church_n but_o neither_o can_v they_o prove_v their_o right_n that_o they_o be_v our_o mother_n neither_o be_v that_o subjection_n which_o they_o demand_v the_o subjection_n due_a to_o a_o particular_a mother_n but_o to_o a_o universal_a lord_n but_o schism_n involve_v in_o its_o notion_n disobedience_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o the_o bishop_n conclude_v the_o mother_n schismatical_a because_o she_o be_v disobedient_a to_o her_o daughter_n his_o first_o error_n be_v to_o make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v our_o mother_n the_o second_o to_o think_v that_o a_o mother_n may_v challenge_v what_o obedience_n she_o list_v of_o her_o daughter_n the_o three_o that_o schism_n consist_v altogether_o in_o the_o disobedience_n of_o subject_n causal_n schism_n may_v and_o do_v ordinary_o consist_v in_o the_o unlawfuli_fw-la injunction_n of_o superior_n my_o second_o reason_n to_o convince_v they_o as_o guilty_a of_o schism_n be_v the_o new_a creed_n set_v out_o by_o pius_n the_o four_o this_o he_o call_v a_o calumny_n he_o can_v speak_v low_a than_o calumny_n absurdity_n contradiction_n falsification_n etc._n etc._n a_o high_a calumny_n to_o slander_v they_o with_o a_o matter_n of_o truth_n it_o be_v such_o a_o calumny_n as_o they_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o shake_v of_o he_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o what_o he_o have_v say_v in_o the_o first_o section_n and_o i_o to_o my_o answer_n there_o he_o say_v it_o be_v know_v that_o each_o point_n in_o that_o profession_n of_o faith_n that_o be_v the_o twelve_o new_a article_n be_v hold_v of_o faith_n by_o the_o former_a church_n how_o hold_v of_o faith_n as_o a_o essential_a of_o faith_n and_o this_o know_v to_o who_o to_o the_o man_n in_o the_o moon_n but_o here_o be_v the_o mad_a contradiction_n that_o ever_o be_v and_o may_v well_o have_v become_v his_o merry_a stationer_n it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o pretend_v that_o he_o pius_n the_o 4._o make_v a_o new_a creed_n till_o it_o be_v show_v that_o any_o of_o these_o point_n be_v not_o former_o of_o faith_n and_o be_v prove_v satisfactory_o that_o the_o apostle_n creed_n contain_v all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n a_o contradiction_n i_o see_v many_o man_n talk_v of_o robin_n hood_n who_o never_o shoot_v in_o his_o bow_n talk_v of_o contradiction_n who_o know_v not_o what_o they_o be_v observe_v the_o equity_n of_o these_o man_n they_o visible_o insert_v 12_o new_a article_n into_o the_o creed_n and_o then_o will_v put_v we_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n before_o and_o that_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n he_o be_v resolve_v to_o keep_v two_o string_n to_o his_o bow_n and_o know_v not_o which_o of_o they_o to_o trust_v to_o hear_v you_o sr._n if_o they_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n now_o as_o you_o have_v make_v they_o than_o they_o be_v always_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o all_o those_o be_v damn_v which_o do_v not_o believe_v they_o but_o that_o you_o dare_v not_o say_v my_o three_o charge_n of_o schism_n be_v because_o they_o maintain_v the_o pope_n in_o his_o rebellion_n against_o general_n counsel_n here_o he_o distinguish_v between_o a_o schooleman_n and_o a_o controvertist_n to_o no_o manner_n of_o purpose_n for_o it_o be_v altogether_o impertinent_a there_o be_v no_o man_n who_o inveigh_v so_o much_o against_o word_v and_o quibble_v as_o himself_o and_o yet_o the_o world_n have_v not_o a_o great_a worder_n or_o quibler_n than_o he_o be_v wherefore_o to_o prevent_v the_o reader_n trouble_v and_o i_o own_o and_o his_o shift_a and_o flinch_v and_o to_o tie_v he_o within_o his_o compass_n perforce_o i_o make_v bold_a to_o reduce_v my_o argument_n to_o a_o syllogistical_a form_n they_o who_o subject_n a_o general_n council_n which_o be_v the_o high_a tribunal_n of_o christian_n to_o the_o pope_n be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n but_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o their_o maintainer_n that_o be_v much_o the_o great_a part_n of_o of_o their_o writer_n do_v subject_a a_o general_n council_n to_o the_o pope_n therefore_o the_o pope_n and_o court_n of_o rome_n with_o all_o their_o maintainer_n that_o be_v the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o their_o writer_n be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n here_o he_o shall_v have_v answer_v punctual_o to_o the_o proposition_n or_o assumption_n either_o by_o deny_v grant_v or_o distinguish_v but_o for_o all_o his_o call_n for_o a_o rigorous_a demonstrative_a way_n he_o like_v it_o not_o because_o he_o can_v make_v such_o impertinent_a extravagant_a excursion_n as_o he_o use_v to_o do_v which_o be_v the_o only_a help_n he_o have_v at_o a_o dead_a lift_n all_o the_o answer_v he_o give_v be_v this_o he_o the_o bishop_n be_v accuse_v of_o a_o contradiction_n and_o nonsense_n and_o to_o clear_v himself_o he_o tell_v we_o he_o will_v now_o lay_v aside_o the_o one_o part_n of_o the_o contradiction_n and_o endeavour_n to_o make_v good_a sense_n of_o the_o other_o to_o what_o proposition_n to_o what_o ●erme_n do_v he_o apply_v this_o answer_n i_o see_v no_o contradiction_n i_o see_v no_o nonsense_n in_o my_o discourse_n nor_o any_o body_n live_v but_o himself_o i_o say_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o he_o pretend_v what_o do_v the_o man_n mean_v by_o these_o wave_n of_o brainless_a butter_v fish_n by_o these_o heterogeneous_a incoherent_a foppery_n and_o chimaerae_n which_o have_v no_o existence_n but_o in_o his_o own_o pate_n if_o he_o mean_v to_o answer_v let_v he_o do_v it_o clear_o like_o a_o scholar_n since_o i_o have_v find_v this_o way_n to_o tie_v he_o to_o his_o matter_n and_o restrain_v his_o torrent_n of_o word_n i_o shall_v put_v it_o in_o practice_n often_o yet_o if_o i_o meet_v with_o any_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v substantial_a among_o his_o vapour_a expression_n which_o have_v but_o the_o least_o resemblance_n of_o a_o answer_n though_o it_o be_v not_o reduce_v into_o form_n i_o will_v glean_v it_o out_o and_o examine_v the_o weight_n of_o it_o such_o be_v this_o which_o follow_v be_v it_o for_o this_o opinion_n of_o the_o pope_n above_o the_o council_n etc._n etc._n how_o be_v they_o guilty_a of_o schism_n for_o this_o unless_o they_o have_v deny_v you_o communion_n for_o hold_v the_o contrary_a or_o press_v upon_o you_o a_o unconscientious_a approbation_n of_o it_o which_o you_o know_v they_o do_v not_o fool_n not_o your_o reader_n my_o lord_n it_o be_v not_o for_o this_o tenet_n which_o you_o impute_v to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o for_o that_o of_o the_o pope_n headship_n or_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n over_o all_o god_n church_n hold_v
i_o will_v find_v a_o english_a law_n that_o sixty_o member_n be_v a_o sufficient_a number_n to_o make_v a_o lawful_a parliament_n i_o have_v do_v his_o command_n and_o i_o know_v no_o such_o law_n nor_o he_o neither_o and_o then_o he_o must_v be_v a_o very_a confident_a man_n to_o cite_v such_o a_o law_n perhaps_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o some_o ordinance_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o how_o many_o member_n at_o the_o least_o must_v be_v present_a at_o do_v of_o some_o inferior_a act_n but_o neither_o be_v this_o ordinance_n a_o english_a law_n ●or_a that_o house_n a_o english_a parliament_n he_o say_v i_o except_v against_o the_o superproportioned_a multitude_n of_o member_n out_o of_o one_o province_n which_o never_o lawful_a parliament_n have_v superproportion_v indeed_o where_o there_o be_v double_a the_o number_n of_o italian_a bishop_n to_o all_o the_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n this_o be_v no_o equal_a representative_a and_o these_o assemble_v thither_o not_o to_o dispute_v as_o he_o fanci_v vain_o but_o mere_o to_o overvote_v the_o tramontane_n a_o few_o bishop_n have_v suffice_v to_o relate_v the_o belief_n or_o tradition_n of_o italy_n as_o well_o as_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o have_v not_o suffice_v to_o do_v the_o pope_n work_n that_o be_v to_o overswey_a the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n with_o his_o superproportioned_a multitude_n of_o italian_a bishop_n he_o say_v perhaps_o i_o will_v pretend_v that_o have_v the_o catholic_n bishop_n out_o of_o their_o province_n be_v there_o they_o will_v have_v vote_v against_o their_o fellow_n catholic_n in_o behalf_n of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n which_o be_v a_o wise_a answer_n i_o heed_v not_o much_o what_o he_o call_v wise_a or_o foolish_a i_o do_v not_o only_o pretend_v but_o i_o see_v clear_o that_o if_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o country_n have_v be_v proportion_v to_o those_o of_o italy_n they_o have_v carry_v the_o debate_n about_o residence_n and_o the_o divine_a right_n of_o episcopacy_n and_o that_o have_v do_v the_o business_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o undo_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n but_o he_o quite_o omit_v the_o most_o material_a part_n of_o my_o discourse_n concern_v his_o resemblance_n between_o a_o parliament_n and_o a_o general_n council_n that_o the_o absence_n of_o whole_a province_n and_o the_o much_o great_a part_n of_o the_o province_n either_o of_o england_n or_o of_o christendom_n for_o want_v of_o due_a summons_n do_v disable_v such_o a_o parliament_n or_o such_o a_o council_n from_o be_v a_o general_n representative_a of_o the_o whole_a he_o may_v even_o as_o well_o say_v that_o a_o assembly_n of_o the_o peer_n and_o burgess_n of_o wales_n upon_o summons_n without_o any_o appearance_n or_o summons_n of_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v a_o lawful_a parliament_n of_o all_o england_n as_o say_v the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v a_o general_n representative_a of_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o be_v never_o summon_v i_o prove_v that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v no_o general_n council_n because_o it_o be_v not_o general_o receive_v no_o not_o among_o the_o occidental_a church_n particular_o by_o the_o church_n of_o france_n in_o point_n of_o discipline_n he_o answer_v that_o notwithstanding_o they_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o lawful_a general_n council_n and_o receive_v it_o in_o all_o determination_n belong_v to_o faith_n add_v that_o the_o disciplinarian_a law_n of_o a_o general_n council_n do_v bind_v particular_a country_n only_o in_o due_a circumstance_n and_o according_a to_o their_o convenience_n but_o the_o contrary_a be_v most_o apparent_a that_o counsel_n true_o general_n be_v the_o supreme_a tribunal_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n do_v bind_v particular_a church_n as_o well_o in_o point_n of_o discipline_n as_o of_o faith_n the_o general_n counsel_n of_o constantinople_n and_o chalcedon_n do_v set_v the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n before_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n and_o equal_v it_o to_o rome_n notwithstanding_o the_o pope_n opposition_n what_o opinion_n the_o king_n and_o church_n of_o france_n have_v of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o those_o day_n appear_v by_o the_o solemn_a protestation_n of_o the_o french_a ambassador_n make_v in_o the_o council_n in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o master_n and_o the_o french_a church_n that_o see_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v at_o rome_n rather_o than_o at_o trent_n 571_o and_o the_o decree_n there_o publish_v be_v rather_o the_o decres_fw-la of_o pius_fw-la the_o four_o then_o of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n we_o denounce_v say_v he_o and_o protest_v before_o you_o all_o that_o whatsoever_o thing_n be_v decree_v and_o publish_v in_o this_o assembly_n by_o the_o mere_a will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o pope_n pius_n neither_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n will_v ever_o approve_v nor_o the_o french_a church_n ever_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o a_o free_a council_n i_o prove_v first_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o sleidan_n second_o by_o the_o bitter_a complaint_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o it_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n send_v from_o rome_n in_o a_o male_a three_o by_o the_o pope_n create_v ●ot_n only_o new_a bishop_n but_o new_a bishopric_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n to_o make_v his_o party_n able_a to_o overvote_v their_o opposer_n to_o the_o first_o he_o say_v that_o sleidan_n be_v a_o notorious_a lie_a authonr_n of_o our_o own_o side_n who_o fit_a to_o relate_v the_o grievance_n of_o the_o protestant_n then_o a_o protestant_n which_o he_o do_v not_o say_v in_o a_o corner_n but_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n in_o print_n when_o they_o may_v have_v refute_v it_o if_o they_o can_v to_o the_o second_o he_o answer_v that_o it_o be_v a_o jeer_a expression_n yes_o it_o be_v bite_v as_o well_o as_o jeer_a ridiculum_fw-la acri_fw-la fortius_fw-la &_o melius_fw-la magnas_fw-la plerumque_fw-la secat_fw-la res_fw-la the_o french_a ambassador_n who_o he_o think_v to_o pass_v by_o in_o silence_n do_v not_o jeer_v yet_o he_o say_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o sad_a earnest_n to_o my_o three_o argument_n he_o say_v ●t_a be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n how_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o the_o pope_n when_o his_o affair_n be_v go_v retrograde_a and_o his_o party_n like_a to_o be_v overvote_v to_o create_v new_a bishopric_n to_o ordain_v new_a bishop_n and_o pack_v they_o away_o present_o to_o the_o council_n to_o assist_v his_o party_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n to_o gain_v a_o plurality_n of_o voice_n be_v this_o nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n in_o his_o opinion_n it_o may_v be_v he_o think_v that_o italy_n have_v not_o bishop_n enough_o there_o yet_o they_o have_v two_o three_o of_o the_o council_n before_o or_o that_o these_o new_a bishop_n do_v understand_v the_o tradition_n and_o belief_n of_o italy_n better_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o it_o be_v his_o mind_n to_o wave_v the_o pope_n patriarchall_a power_n i_o be_o content_v otherwise_o his_o proof_n will_v not_o weigh_v much_o unless_o we_o admit_v stranger_n who_o know_v little_a or_o nothing_o of_o our_o privilege_n more_o than_o we_o know_v the_o cyprian_a privilege_n before_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n to_o be_v competent_a judge_n and_o will_v interpret_v a_o western_a patriarch_n to_o be_v the_o only_a patriarch_n of_o all_o the_o west_n the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n be_v primate_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o all_o england_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o his_o jurisdiction_n forfeiture_n and_o quit_v be_v two_o distinct_a charge_n a_o office_n be_v forfeit_v by_o abuse_n and_o quit_v by_o assume_v a_o new_a office_n inconsistent_a with_o the_o former_a as_o i_o have_v show_v the_o papacy_n and_o a_o patriarchate_n that_o be_v a_o sovereign_n and_o subordinate_a power_n to_o be_v but_o a_o patriarchate_n and_o a_o bishopric_n be_v both_o subordinate_a to_o a_o general_n council_n be_v not_o inconsistent_a and_o much_o less_o the_o office_n of_o a_o king_n and_o master_n of_o a_o family_n the_o one_o be_v political_a the_o other_o economical_a but_o a_o universal_a monarchy_n by_o divine_a right_n and_o the_o presidency_n of_o a_o particular_a province_n by_o humane_a right_n be_v inconsistent_a i_o give_v he_o my_o reason_n for_o it_o and_o he_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o they_o he_o except_v against_o my_o still_n patriarchall_a authority_n a_o patriarchall_a aristocratical_a dignity_n which_o he_o call_v my_o thrice_o repeat_v non_fw-la sense_n it_o be_v well_o he_o do_v not_o make_v it_o a_o contradiction_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o a_o patriarchate_n be_v a_o government_n by_o one_o a_o aristocracy_n by_o many_o the_o answer_n be_v obvious_a and_o easy_a a_o patriarch_n be_v a_o monarch_n in_o the_o government_n
of_o his_o own_o patriarchate_o yet_o subordinate_a to_o a_o general_n council_n but_o in_o a_o general_n council_n or_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o be_v but_o one_o of_o the_o optimates_fw-la or_o a_o fellow_n governor_n with_o other_o bishop_n he_o say_v it_o be_v never_o pretend_v by_o catholic_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o king_n of_o the_o church_n i_o wonder_v that_o he_o be_v no_o bet●er_n acquaint_v with_o the_o sorbone_n dispute_v whether_o the_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o absolute_a monarchy_n temper_v with_o a_o aristocracy_n we_o have_v a_o meritorious_a sacrifice_n that_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n we_o have_v a_o commemorative_n and_o applicative_a sacrifice_n or_o a_o commemoration_n and_o application_n of_o that_o sacrifice_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n a_o suppletory_a sacrifice_n to_o supply_v any_o want_n or_o defect_n in_o that_o sacrifice_n he_o dare_v not_o own_o and_o unless_o he_o do_v own_o it_o he_o say_v no_o more_o than_o we_o say_v what_o i_o speak_v of_o our_o register_n i_o intend_v principal_o of_o that_o register_n of_o the_o right_a ordination_n of_o protestant_a bishop_n that_o he_o may_v see_v when_o he_o will_v for_o his_o love_n and_o have_v the_o copy_n of_o any_o act_n in_o it_o for_o his_o money_n but_o he_o have_v rather_o wrangle_v about_o it_o then_o take_v such_o pain_n if_o he_o will_v have_v a_o little_a patience_n i_o will_v ease_v he_o of_o that_o labour_n and_o expense_n it_o be_v no_o insuperable_a difficulty_n nor_o any_o difficulty_n at_o all_o to_o we_o to_o find_v out_o that_o catholic_n church_n which_o we_o have_v in_o our_o creed_n but_o to_o find_v out_o his_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v both_o a_o contradiction_n in_o adjecto_fw-la and_o a_o apple_n of_o contention_n serve_v to_o commit_v he_o and_o his_o friend_n together_o among_o themselves_o which_o he_o know_v and_o therefore_o decline_v it_o i_o call_v not_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o italy_n either_o episcopelles_n or_o the_o pope_n hungry_a parasitical_a pensioner_n but_o the_o flatterer_n of_o the_o roman_a court_n and_o principal_o those_o petty_a bishop_n which_o be_v create_v during_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n to_o serve_v the_o pope_n turn_n if_o he_o think_v that_o court_n free_a from_o such_o moth_n he_o be_v much_o mistake_v neither_o be_v these_o expression_n mine_v original_o i_o learn_v they_o from_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o italy_n themselves_o who_o give_v they_o those_o very_a name_n of_o episcopelles_n etc._n etc._n neither_o do_v i_o tax_v any_o man_n in_o particular_a he_o desire_v i_o to_o examine_v my_o conscience_n whether_o i_o do_v not_o get_v my_o live_n by_o preach_v that_o doctrine_n which_o i_o put_v in_o my_o book_n which_o how_o many_o notorious_a falsity_n contradiction_n and_o tergiversation_n they_o have_v in_o they_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o this_o present_a work_n yes_o if_o he_o and_o his_o merry_a stationer_n may_v be_v my_o judge_n now_o his_o work_n be_v end_v and_o answer_v i_o will_v make_v he_o a_o fair_a offer_n if_o he_o be_v able_a to_o make_v but_o one_o of_o all_o his_o contradiction_n and_o falsification_n and_o absurdity_n good_a i_o will_v be_v repute_v guilty_a of_o all_o the_o rest_n if_o he_o be_v not_o i_o desire_v he_o both_o to_o examine_v his_o own_o conscience_n and_o discretion_n what_o reward_n he_o deserve_v both_o at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n and_o man_n for_o so_o many_o notorious_a calumny_n as_o for_o his_o fault_n i_o shall_v rather_o leave_v they_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n then_o trouble_v myself_o with_o the_o recapitulation_n of_o they_o in_o the_o close_a of_o my_o discourse_n i_o answer_v a_o exception_n of_o he_o that_o i_o cite_v gerson_n against_o myself_o the_o word_n of_o gerson_n or_o rather_o of_o the_o eastern_a church_n when_o they_o separate_v from_o the_o roman_a be_v these_o potentiam_fw-la tuam_fw-la recognoscimus_fw-la avar●●iam_fw-la tuam_fw-la implere_fw-la non_fw-la possumus_fw-la vivite_fw-la per_fw-la vos_fw-la we_o know_v thy_o power_n we_o can_v satisfy_v thy_o covetousness_n live_v by_o yourselves_o they_o know_v that_o he_o have_v a_o patriarchall_a power_n and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o or_o chief_a of_o the_o patriarch_n but_o this_o power_n we_o deny_v not_o that_o power_n which_o we_o deny_v be_v a_o supremacy_n of_o single_a power_n and_o that_o by_o christ_n own_o ordination_n the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o grecian_n do_v acknowledge_v such_o a_o power_n due_a to_o the_o pope_n in_o these_o word_n that_o they_o do_v not_o i_o prove_v first_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o most_o of_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n who_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n yearly_a as_o a_o schismatic_a for_o challenge_v this_o power_n second_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o all_o their_o writer_n especial_o the_o modern_a greek_n as_o hieremy_n and_o cyrill_n the_o two_o succeed_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o nilus_n a_o archbishop_n &c._n &c._n who_o all_o deny_v this_o power_n to_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n three_o i_o prove_v it_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n in_o this_o very_a chapter_n there_o be_v no_o one_o point_n produce_v by_o he_o which_o our_o church_n look_v upon_o as_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n in_o which_o they_o dissent_v from_o we_o and_o consent_v with_o the_o protestant_n except_o that_o one_o of_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n how_o do_v they_o grant_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o yet_o continue_v the_o same_o without_o variation_n as_o they_o have_v do_v i_o do_v not_o say_v this_o be_v a_o contradiction_n but_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n his_o reason_n be_v mere_a prevarication_n not_o reason_n first_o here_o be_v no_o opposition_n between_o power_n and_o covetousness_n unless_o he_o mean_v all_o affirmative_n and_o negative_n whatsoever_o be_v the_o subject_n or_o predicate_v be_v opposite_n and_o if_o they_o be_v it_o signify_v nothing_o second_o he_o demand_v what_o power_n have_v the_o pope_n over_o they_o except_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n i_o answer_v he_o show_v they_o sufficient_o at_o the_o division_n of_o the_o greek_a empire_n and_o then_o they_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o his_o assistence_n against_o the_o turk_n his_o three_o four_o and_o five_o argument_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o one_o and_o when_o they_o be_v twist_v they_o will_v not_o have_v the_o weight_n of_o one_o single_a hair_n the_o difference_n be_v about_o undue_a subsidy_n and_o tax_n but_o the_o demand_v subsidy_n seem_v incredible_a have_v there_o not_o be_v some_o preacknowledged_a power_n to_o ground_v such_o demand_n upon_o yes_o there_o be_v his_o protopatriarchall_a power_n and_o that_o tenter_v and_o stretch_v out_o to_o the_o uttermost_a extent_n and_o when_o he_o will_v have_v extend_v it_o yet_o high_o the_o grecian_n cast_v out_o his_o usurpation_n i_o see_v he_o do_v but_o grope_v in_o the_o dark_a i_o will_v help_v he_o to_o some_o light_n peter_n steward_n upon_o caleca_n tell_v he_o what_o these_o undue_a subsidy_n and_o exaction_n be_v when_o the_o pope_n legate_n bring_v yearly_o the_o chrism_n from_o the_o apostolic_a see_v to_o constantinople_n they_o will_v not_o depart_v from_o thence_o unless_o they_o have_v eighty_o pound_n weight_n of_o gold_n beside_o other_o gift_n bestow_v upon_o they_o last_o he_o add_v gerson_n conclude_v that_o upon_o this_o consideration_n they_o may_v proceed_v to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o french_a church_n notwithstanding_o the_o contradiction_n which_o perhaps_o some_o of_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n will_v make_v which_o evidence_v that_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pope_n just_a power_n be_v retain_v and_o encroachment_n on_o their_o liberty_n only_o deny_v concedo_fw-la omne_fw-la his_o protopatriarchall_a power_n be_v acknowledge_v his_o sovereignty_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v deny_v as_o a_o encroachment_n and_o this_o be_v the_o same_o method_n which_o we_o observe_v in_o england_n and_o so_o mr._n serjeant_n conclude_v his_o rejoinder_n that_o the_o bishop_n begin_v like_o a_o bowler_n and_o end_n like_o one_o of_o those_o artificer_n who_o go_v to_o mend_v one_o hole_n use_v to_o make_v other_o three_o just_a mr._n sergeant_n just_a as_o your_o mind_n think_v so_o the_o bell_n clink_v if_o there_o be_v any_o of_o those_o artificer_n here_o it_o be_v yourself_o who_o constant_a custom_n be_v to_o make_v hole_n where_o there_o be_v none_o and_o out_o of_o a_o eager_a desire_n of_o contradict_v other_o to_o plunge_v yourself_o irrecoverable_o into_o real_a contradiction_n with_o scurrility_n you_o begin_v this_o rejoinder_n and_o with_o scurrility_n you_o end_v it_o that_o which_o follow_v be_v a_o dish_n of_o thrice_o sodden_a colewort_n or_o a_o vain_a recapitulation_n of_o his_o own_o imaginary_a achievement_n which_o the_o reader_n